Stories
Slash Boxes
Comments

Dev.SN ♥ developers

posted by The Mighty Buzzard on Friday December 02 2016, @09:24PM   Printer-friendly
from the fill-er-up dept.
This story needs over 200 comments. Preferably in a dozen or so threads. Get to work. A link here.
 
This discussion has been archived. No new comments can be posted.
Display Options Breakthrough Mark All as Read Mark All as Unread
The Fine Print: The following comments are owned by whoever posted them. We are not responsible for them in any way.
  • (Score: 2) by The Mighty Buzzard on Friday December 02 2016, @10:31PM (22 children)

    by The Mighty Buzzard (18) Subscriber Badge <themightybuzzard@soylentnews.org> on Friday December 02 2016, @10:31PM (#28875) Journal

    I really am, I just want to know how you know.

    --
    123
    456
    789
    Starting Score:    1  point
    Karma-Bonus Modifier   +1  

    Total Score:   2  
  • (Score: 2) by cmn32480 on Friday December 02 2016, @10:37PM (21 children)

    by cmn32480 (443) on Friday December 02 2016, @10:37PM (#28882) Journal

    YO Mamma!

    • (Score: 2) by martyb on Saturday December 03 2016, @11:44PM (6 children)

      by martyb (76) on Saturday December 03 2016, @11:44PM (#28921) Journal

      Lorem ipsum dolor sit amet, consectetur adipiscing elit. In ante lacus, laoreet maximus purus non, accumsan iaculis felis. Phasellus congue metus vel sapien hendrerit semper. Nunc commodo purus sem, vitae vulputate sem gravida et. Aenean a nulla ex. Aliquam interdum commodo justo, a vestibulum erat egestas quis. Ut porttitor congue diam eu placerat. Vivamus ut iaculis sapien. Suspendisse eu dui sit amet ipsum tristique dictum. Integer ultricies nisl at ex lacinia, ut vehicula ipsum porta. Curabitur quis mi non elit aliquet facilisis. Nullam ut massa quis risus maximus auctor vel et augue. Quisque sodales turpis ex, ut fringilla dui molestie eu. Etiam at ultrices erat. Phasellus ac massa vel sem feugiat mollis non et mauris. Praesent tempor venenatis eros, vitae tincidunt tellus. Phasellus condimentum est tincidunt varius imperdiet.

      Pellentesque habitant morbi tristique senectus et netus et malesuada fames ac turpis egestas. In feugiat nisi nisl, nec faucibus sem faucibus id. Duis eget ligula interdum, tincidunt lorem sed, semper sem. Mauris erat risus, cursus eu justo sed, vestibulum blandit metus. Pellentesque habitant morbi tristique senectus et netus et malesuada fames ac turpis egestas. Vestibulum pellentesque metus sem, ut dapibus ante lobortis vel. Donec sed feugiat nisl. In ut neque venenatis, dignissim turpis sit amet, elementum leo. Integer non libero elementum, fringilla mauris ac, venenatis tortor. Praesent a vulputate velit, eu posuere purus. Morbi odio sem, placerat non pharetra sit amet, lobortis sit amet mi. Mauris id luctus ex. Proin sed lobortis orci, ac lobortis massa. Sed et ante ut metus luctus fringilla sed nec elit.

      Interdum et malesuada fames ac ante ipsum primis in faucibus. Nunc sem lorem, vestibulum ut egestas at, vestibulum sed odio. Ut eu lacus ac ligula dictum bibendum. Nunc cursus suscipit molestie. Donec et arcu volutpat, accumsan ex sit amet, sollicitudin orci. Sed a enim eu dolor tempor pharetra id at purus. Nam aliquam augue id imperdiet imperdiet. Cras dignissim ex et sapien hendrerit, at vehicula urna tempor. Praesent hendrerit eleifend congue. Nulla quis sagittis magna, a faucibus ligula. Suspendisse eleifend nisl a felis pulvinar venenatis. Etiam lobortis eros commodo semper hendrerit. Nam vestibulum, nisl at aliquet luctus, nisl risus tincidunt odio, lacinia pretium felis quam sit amet arcu. In vulputate erat massa, non porttitor nisi condimentum vel. Vestibulum ante ipsum primis in faucibus orci luctus et ultrices posuere cubilia Curae; Donec id orci leo.

      Donec ac magna sed dolor ultricies auctor. Curabitur sit amet ex viverra, tincidunt diam mattis, dapibus massa. Morbi quam dolor, lobortis ac justo in, posuere facilisis mi. Vestibulum sed efficitur mauris, in varius odio. Nam tempor enim ac mi efficitur, eget sodales ligula sagittis. Aliquam sit amet ultrices quam, nec iaculis lorem. Aenean ac nulla quam. Pellentesque habitant morbi tristique senectus et netus et malesuada fames ac turpis egestas. Aliquam sit amet lectus est.

      Praesent scelerisque tristique tellus sit amet imperdiet. Ut vitae dolor ac sapien tincidunt posuere cursus et nulla. Phasellus sit amet bibendum velit, id bibendum nisi. Nam fringilla dolor eget odio aliquet, aliquet porta lacus dictum. Suspendisse placerat, libero a cursus posuere, enim ligula lacinia mi, eget cursus justo eros sed urna. Aenean eros turpis, consectetur et nulla vitae, condimentum finibus nibh. In maximus nulla iaculis purus commodo bibendum. Donec varius facilisis arcu, ut ullamcorper ex ultrices eu. Quisque sed aliquam quam. Aliquam gravida cursus eleifend. Sed enim nisl, pretium ut posuere id, tristique sed ante. Donec dictum risus nec nunc feugiat viverra. Phasellus id ex a quam tempus condimentum. Donec vehicula convallis facilisis.

      Duis pharetra pharetra tincidunt. Donec finibus nisi quam, ut porta odio pellentesque sit amet. Aliquam eu interdum tellus, nec vehicula velit. Pellentesque commodo bibendum velit, vitae elementum nulla interdum aliquet. Fusce a tortor eros. Etiam efficitur venenatis nulla sed volutpat. Praesent auctor rhoncus ex, et ullamcorper diam tincidunt eget.

      Donec arcu justo, feugiat id tristique efficitur, feugiat ac nisi. Phasellus scelerisque dictum magna vitae laoreet. Phasellus consequat libero id faucibus accumsan. Maecenas bibendum ornare tortor, in ornare elit sollicitudin et. Quisque vel feugiat enim. Sed dignissim pretium massa nec vulputate. Lorem ipsum dolor sit amet, consectetur adipiscing elit. Fusce sed neque tellus. Class aptent taciti sociosqu ad litora torquent per conubia nostra, per inceptos himenaeos. Sed interdum congue dolor ac tempus. Nam id pellentesque lectus. Suspendisse cursus ipsum nec tempor dignissim. Aenean sollicitudin posuere nunc a iaculis. Pellentesque habitant morbi tristique senectus et netus et malesuada fames ac turpis egestas. Proin efficitur imperdiet est vitae commodo.

      Pellentesque tristique suscipit ante, id faucibus velit maximus at. Integer in vehicula nibh. Nulla tempor purus vitae elit pellentesque, ut malesuada purus ultricies. Nunc porta sed sapien ut sagittis. Nullam eget quam euismod, posuere orci vel, posuere tellus. Cras eu odio dignissim, elementum massa in, scelerisque mi. Sed ultrices iaculis turpis et malesuada. Vivamus elementum diam mi, sed suscipit sapien dictum nec. Vivamus nec molestie tellus.

      Mauris at ligula dui. Nulla a lobortis dui. Duis vehicula et justo aliquam facilisis. Aenean egestas odio id elit pulvinar sollicitudin. Nunc rhoncus tristique nibh, eu posuere sem faucibus vitae. Nulla laoreet aliquet nibh. Pellentesque libero dui, ultrices ac sagittis quis, aliquet a eros. Nunc non lobortis diam. Quisque at erat non tellus interdum auctor sit amet nec justo. Pellentesque egestas malesuada magna, id semper arcu ullamcorper viverra.

      Curabitur hendrerit odio sed massa feugiat, eu porta ipsum rutrum. Nullam ullamcorper elit sed risus sagittis ornare vel et orci. Phasellus viverra finibus ultrices. Curabitur vulputate, ex id placerat porta, arcu lorem ultricies turpis, ac suscipit mauris leo eget sapien. Donec sed malesuada nisi, sit amet posuere risus. Nulla a ullamcorper ligula. Suspendisse sed fringilla ex. Donec nec massa elementum neque faucibus dapibus. Aenean dignissim ullamcorper turpis vel consequat. Mauris malesuada lacus ante, facilisis ullamcorper nisl consectetur elementum. Cras eget malesuada sapien, at tincidunt nibh. Aliquam nec dolor a dolor porttitor commodo ac a massa. Morbi pulvinar augue at erat condimentum, efficitur consectetur mi commodo.

      Ut varius eget massa sagittis sollicitudin. Etiam ut tellus sodales, placerat nulla vel, egestas mauris. Praesent ante arcu, malesuada vel placerat nec, tempor quis lectus. Mauris vel metus vitae est fermentum commodo. Nunc suscipit porta sodales. Interdum et malesuada fames ac ante ipsum primis in faucibus. Vivamus iaculis et leo scelerisque condimentum. Nulla ultricies erat ligula, in laoreet orci fermentum a. Aliquam vitae nisi scelerisque, porttitor sem in, dictum mi.

      Nulla luctus ligula at ipsum sollicitudin, in sollicitudin arcu sollicitudin. Ut vitae sagittis erat. Integer convallis diam sed erat volutpat tempus. Nam ultricies augue non dui tincidunt tincidunt. Mauris efficitur, lorem et suscipit tincidunt, orci nibh rutrum arcu, eu imperdiet urna ex et nisl. Etiam interdum turpis ut fringilla vestibulum. Duis ligula lacus, lacinia sit amet libero quis, imperdiet luctus magna. Nulla vel nisi a metus fermentum pellentesque et sagittis dui. Vestibulum lorem massa, pellentesque id sollicitudin vel, pulvinar eu arcu. In finibus, sapien mattis sagittis bibendum, libero odio tincidunt orci, vel cursus augue felis id mi. Etiam commodo eu ante ac molestie.

      Curabitur lacinia eu nisl nec mattis. Vestibulum at dolor vel tortor scelerisque consectetur a ut tellus. Nam lacus purus, cursus hendrerit ultrices eget, dignissim at metus. Donec sit amet feugiat massa. Nunc eget rutrum est. Suspendisse congue euismod dolor, eu efficitur tortor semper auctor. Quisque tempor arcu risus, in facilisis turpis volutpat non. Duis in ultrices dui, eget maximus nisi. Ut facilisis, enim et sodales vehicula, odio lectus bibendum neque, lobortis ultricies nulla mauris luctus dui. Proin fringilla, velit et feugiat viverra, leo lorem hendrerit sem, eget interdum arcu libero et erat. Nunc laoreet malesuada interdum. Vestibulum ante ipsum primis in faucibus orci luctus et ultrices posuere cubilia Curae; Nunc enim eros, lacinia id metus ut, viverra tempus sapien.

      Donec eu felis urna. Vestibulum quis lacinia sem. Pellentesque quis nulla erat. Ut ut nibh ac arcu tempor ultricies id et metus. Nullam dictum a diam eget accumsan. Pellentesque feugiat lacus non euismod eleifend. Donec tortor tortor, tincidunt a gravida vel, tempor et est. Nam nulla est, tristique non lacus sit amet, convallis malesuada nisl.

      Mauris libero ipsum, gravida et elementum non, aliquam quis lorem. Aenean ac tempus risus, vitae sodales ante. Curabitur congue tellus vitae elementum sollicitudin. Nam enim libero, vestibulum vel arcu sed, feugiat dignissim augue. Nullam lacinia sit amet neque id bibendum. Quisque non lorem diam. Curabitur efficitur erat id congue cursus. Aliquam sollicitudin, dolor eget sodales malesuada, quam mauris eleifend justo, vel tempor elit neque ut libero. Praesent ex sapien, consectetur id neque vel, pharetra laoreet massa. Aliquam elit neque, efficitur interdum odio quis, pulvinar ultrices lectus. Mauris euismod, orci at eleifend dapibus, mauris urna interdum odio, eu malesuada purus tellus ac ex. Integer facilisis urna tortor, sit amet eleifend dolor posuere sed. Aliquam malesuada, dui in lobortis tempus, purus ligula dictum lorem, ac tempus erat lacus vitae purus.

      Pellentesque egestas, tortor non eleifend varius, quam sapien tincidunt lectus, vel consectetur orci ligula in risus. Vestibulum quis erat placerat, semper lorem a, vulputate turpis. Aenean erat justo, sollicitudin id maximus at, gravida non magna. Curabitur eu justo id diam laoreet faucibus ut nec neque. Maecenas auctor augue id libero ornare, nec tempus urna mattis. Sed ut congue est. Curabitur lobortis, diam id tempus accumsan, lacus magna sodales arcu, at bibendum mauris mauris mollis sem. Sed consequat neque sit amet ornare finibus. Curabitur nec ipsum nec est vestibulum mollis. Vestibulum ut orci feugiat, maximus quam non, luctus metus. Aliquam erat volutpat. Duis eu dui ut lacus vestibulum bibendum vel et turpis. Curabitur nec lacus egestas, convallis tellus non, ornare lacus.

      Aliquam tincidunt dolor vel ipsum tempor, eget dictum tortor imperdiet. Praesent sed quam eros. Sed convallis odio sed tempus tincidunt. Ut hendrerit eu lectus eu imperdiet. Curabitur vitae enim lacinia, lobortis purus vitae, consequat mauris. Morbi fermentum erat eu tristique porta. Interdum et malesuada fames ac ante ipsum primis in faucibus. Integer mollis nulla ut ultrices pulvinar. Integer a ligula nisl. Praesent non tincidunt nibh, sed tincidunt nisi. Donec dignissim dictum ante non molestie. Pellentesque at porta massa, nec mattis nibh.

      Nunc aliquet lacus ut ipsum ultricies dignissim. Nam ac lorem non ante molestie vulputate a et mi. Morbi pretium nibh non dolor vestibulum, ac ornare ligula ultricies. Sed aliquet lacus purus. Donec luctus neque id nunc tincidunt, sed commodo enim malesuada. Donec at metus in odio finibus tempus. Phasellus at lacinia leo. Nunc pharetra eu purus id sollicitudin. Maecenas eu lectus a leo porttitor pellentesque non sed metus. Nullam in odio a augue luctus mattis. Quisque euismod est in ipsum laoreet, in bibendum magna scelerisque. Suspendisse nec mattis nisi, vel blandit nisi. Duis quis tempus nisi, at malesuada elit. Curabitur sodales dapibus fringilla. Fusce et aliquam libero, sed pulvinar erat.

      Nunc viverra quam dui, sed ullamcorper diam pellentesque sit amet. Mauris gravida odio id mi scelerisque, et maximus nibh lobortis. In non lacinia lorem. Sed vitae nunc lorem. Suspendisse potenti. Donec nec magna eu sem porta rutrum ac nec ex. Nunc tempor vulputate risus id condimentum. Proin sapien diam, scelerisque sit amet commodo vitae, aliquet in ipsum. Morbi vitae arcu tincidunt, venenatis eros consectetur, aliquet eros. Vestibulum eget ipsum tempor, sodales sem et, feugiat quam. Proin sit amet iaculis urna. Nunc sapien augue, laoreet in viverra vel, condimentum vitae sapien.

      Nullam iaculis dolor nec leo pharetra eleifend. Nam varius porta hendrerit. Nunc vitae gravida libero. Vestibulum sodales, enim sagittis commodo finibus, ipsum ante consequat enim, et elementum dolor lacus nec nisi. Nullam faucibus ut ipsum at feugiat. Phasellus lacinia quis erat ac fringilla. Interdum et malesuada fames ac ante ipsum primis in faucibus. Maecenas ac elit non leo vulputate iaculis at sit amet odio. Duis facilisis felis non augue vulputate malesuada. Praesent felis odio, tristique at efficitur viverra, mattis ut arcu. Donec vel ornare dolor, vel placerat ante. Duis sed diam nec libero rhoncus rutrum in ut tellus. Praesent ac lacus sit amet ante condimentum luctus.

      In tempus neque ac nulla aliquet maximus in sed urna. Curabitur fermentum, lorem et interdum convallis, enim erat laoreet diam, id venenatis nulla nulla id nisl. Aliquam tempor congue massa tincidunt gravida. Lorem ipsum dolor sit amet, consectetur adipiscing elit. In interdum et elit eget molestie. Morbi eget ex ac sapien malesuada fringilla. Vestibulum vulputate in odio aliquam imperdiet. Aenean aliquet fermentum ligula, sit amet tincidunt ipsum tempus a.

      Proin convallis dolor ut turpis ultricies, vel iaculis mi semper. Donec non leo dolor. Nunc et pulvinar justo. Ut cursus euismod quam, porta facilisis metus venenatis vitae. Sed eu varius lectus. In odio nulla, blandit ut diam vel, bibendum eleifend sem. Pellentesque fermentum nisl in vehicula luctus. Duis et aliquam mi, ut dictum arcu. Aliquam erat volutpat. Pellentesque vel porta urna, nec vehicula lectus. Vivamus congue turpis mauris, ut pellentesque massa facilisis sed. Duis ex ligula, porta vel diam vel, condimentum tempor neque. Aliquam erat volutpat. Praesent gravida odio nibh, vitae dapibus dolor maximus in.

      Mauris enim lacus, dictum non mauris et, mattis suscipit nunc. Vestibulum a consequat nisl. Curabitur euismod placerat neque eget rutrum. Nam tincidunt viverra mi nec malesuada. Praesent laoreet purus gravida nisl aliquam varius elementum vitae eros. Proin nisl arcu, placerat volutpat augue sed, ultrices tempor velit. Aenean at pellentesque ipsum, a ornare diam. Mauris in egestas augue. Aliquam tempus neque in felis ullamcorper pulvinar. Proin aliquet eget libero eu maximus. Nunc vitae elit vulputate, ornare nunc vel, feugiat lacus. Vivamus dui neque, consectetur sed neque eu, facilisis mollis arcu. Curabitur sollicitudin dolor ac accumsan rutrum. Maecenas convallis porta felis, eget euismod odio porttitor a.

      Etiam lobortis maximus nibh, vitae gravida nibh convallis non. Integer aliquam urna eget nunc pretium, id sollicitudin magna volutpat. Vivamus sodales elit orci. Phasellus interdum, massa eu molestie consectetur, purus tellus finibus purus, vel fringilla eros libero facilisis erat. Ut eget diam vehicula, auctor lorem non, efficitur risus. Nullam lobortis nulla in massa condimentum, quis luctus massa sollicitudin. Nulla sagittis et lectus porttitor tristique. Nam convallis, velit bibendum faucibus luctus, purus felis efficitur justo, eu imperdiet neque odio id felis. Cras convallis justo urna, quis venenatis lacus scelerisque vel. In blandit elementum leo, at eleifend ex pellentesque id. Maecenas euismod quis nunc in porttitor. Suspendisse potenti. In elementum congue ipsum, sed laoreet dui faucibus eleifend.

      Sed venenatis porta sem in eleifend. Mauris in ligula congue, pellentesque mi eu, tempor diam. Donec at finibus ante, at cursus elit. Nunc vestibulum pulvinar orci in euismod. Donec elementum orci diam. Duis vestibulum venenatis massa, ac tristique tellus facilisis sit amet. Integer rhoncus erat in efficitur bibendum. Mauris nulla elit, vestibulum quis porttitor in, porttitor eget metus.

      Aenean placerat placerat imperdiet. Vivamus rutrum, orci eget eleifend varius, urna nisl hendrerit purus, ut efficitur nisi nulla a erat. Cras ut dictum velit. Curabitur scelerisque ac lacus at sollicitudin. Suspendisse a dolor sit amet libero consectetur rutrum et in metus. In vehicula purus at placerat viverra. Integer eget lectus ipsum. Praesent nec imperdiet purus. Phasellus at ipsum at tortor semper porttitor. Phasellus at pretium sem, viverra molestie lorem.

      Nam dapibus semper risus ut interdum. Maecenas blandit ante et sem consequat, non suscipit orci posuere. Mauris aliquet tellus nisl, sit amet euismod est rutrum vel. Proin quis ullamcorper mi. Mauris ac tellus lorem. Nam eu sodales dui, quis vulputate velit. Proin a lorem vel nibh consectetur auctor at vel metus. Duis sed tortor eget mauris volutpat ullamcorper. Donec a vulputate felis. Donec non rutrum nibh, ut hendrerit ligula. Maecenas non odio id sem euismod euismod.

      Aenean rutrum sem eget enim pharetra lobortis. Aenean malesuada nulla faucibus ipsum volutpat, volutpat fringilla arcu imperdiet. Pellentesque non posuere tellus. Fusce sed tincidunt eros. Phasellus sed ex lobortis, blandit lacus id, maximus turpis. Mauris aliquet sapien sed arcu facilisis, eu blandit tortor condimentum. Phasellus eu lectus mollis, tincidunt orci vel, varius lorem. Nullam erat augue, euismod id gravida at, suscipit et elit. In hac habitasse platea dictumst. Fusce sollicitudin urna dolor. Quisque euismod ornare urna non maximus. Duis faucibus gravida elementum. Aliquam non turpis vitae orci malesuada varius. Phasellus consequat, turpis ut consequat hendrerit, ligula nunc viverra est, ut malesuada justo libero at metus. Fusce venenatis, nisl a tristique eleifend, felis mi malesuada massa, non maximus magna orci sit amet ex.

      Duis ullamcorper aliquam nibh, ac egestas quam. Cras sed est vulputate ex sodales varius vel id libero. Nullam quam urna, consequat vitae tellus sed, efficitur gravida leo. Duis est lectus, facilisis vel condimentum sit amet, tempus et ipsum. Ut dapibus quam vitae diam vestibulum, vitae volutpat sapien posuere. Fusce mollis bibendum ornare. Suspendisse maximus lorem eget sollicitudin dictum. Aliquam sit amet lectus lectus. Fusce lorem tellus, feugiat sed est nec, ornare volutpat orci.

      Proin urna nibh, tincidunt nec dolor at, malesuada laoreet erat. Vivamus eu enim nec nulla elementum vehicula. Praesent scelerisque turpis sit amet sem interdum, non tempor est mollis. Maecenas lobortis, metus in dictum placerat, ipsum velit auctor ante, sit amet pretium mi mi vitae erat. Fusce justo dui, ornare eu dolor ut, tempor maximus turpis. Nulla et arcu sed lectus mollis pretium. Phasellus faucibus commodo arcu vel tempor. Nam non diam ut magna feugiat mollis. Maecenas ex erat, pulvinar a nisi at, scelerisque tincidunt tellus. Morbi pharetra odio tellus, sit amet consequat erat mollis aliquet. Aenean non felis quis mi venenatis aliquet. Nam pellentesque maximus arcu ut vulputate. Quisque at leo erat.

      Sed varius vulputate elementum. Maecenas hendrerit nisl in tellus aliquam, condimentum consectetur dolor faucibus. Nulla facilisi. Quisque vitae condimentum arcu. Quisque commodo risus sit amet enim ultrices aliquet. Pellentesque volutpat id dui id volutpat. Ut nec dignissim dui. Duis laoreet tortor eget erat venenatis dictum. Duis viverra justo et ex bibendum, in euismod massa dapibus. Phasellus non dolor venenatis, euismod tellus sit amet, fringilla augue. Nullam molestie tortor euismod porta gravida. Ut dignissim nulla sem, vel tincidunt tortor elementum ac.

      Quisque ut dictum ipsum. Maecenas ut elementum mi. Nulla porta iaculis lectus, eu aliquet quam. Curabitur vitae commodo urna. Donec porttitor odio sed leo viverra maximus. Donec at justo vehicula, lobortis ipsum eleifend, lobortis metus. Proin ullamcorper egestas aliquam. Proin pretium luctus leo ultricies ultrices. Mauris nec odio sit amet purus mattis volutpat. Praesent facilisis est dapibus blandit condimentum. Interdum et malesuada fames ac ante ipsum primis in faucibus. Donec feugiat tellus non tortor rhoncus, ac semper nibh tempor. Nunc at diam enim. Praesent in hendrerit nulla. Proin pharetra ante hendrerit nunc placerat, laoreet sollicitudin erat vehicula. Nunc eu tincidunt turpis.

      Praesent at augue bibendum, venenatis nunc accumsan, porttitor velit. Vestibulum sit amet eros ante. Phasellus euismod lacinia lacus eu semper. Morbi luctus pellentesque tempus. Donec congue purus est, nec tincidunt dui pretium eget. Donec lacinia ullamcorper urna nec rhoncus. Fusce dignissim mi non tristique hendrerit. Donec bibendum orci ante, ac gravida libero porta id. Nunc aliquam mi ligula, non vulputate justo dictum in. Aenean dictum turpis a diam condimentum, vitae gravida libero ullamcorper. Cras finibus sit amet nisl nec sagittis. Donec elit elit, vulputate facilisis augue sed, condimentum pharetra ante.

      Nunc et ultricies ipsum. Fusce quis sapien justo. Aenean ac tellus nec urna pretium venenatis non in odio. Fusce at aliquam diam. Fusce massa turpis, cursus consequat justo ut, mattis tincidunt felis. Nam sed ipsum metus. Morbi pretium magna eu pulvinar mattis. Cras sit amet sagittis dui, at sollicitudin massa. Sed neque metus, tempor nec ipsum eleifend, dapibus laoreet eros. Pellentesque id sapien ac nunc eleifend fermentum. Cras pharetra est quis nisl vulputate molestie. Sed egestas iaculis bibendum. Nullam aliquet dolor vel tellus pharetra consequat. Cras et eros dignissim, ultricies erat vel, varius massa. Sed bibendum, tellus vitae fringilla hendrerit, mi ligula dictum lacus, vel sagittis eros sem a erat.

      In aliquam leo consequat risus fermentum accumsan. Morbi mollis mauris maximus, malesuada ex a, porttitor urna. Duis et consequat magna, ac elementum orci. Morbi sed nulla orci. Suspendisse viverra euismod urna sit amet consectetur. Morbi dictum nisl sed dui gravida, id ullamcorper urna ultrices. Aenean nisi turpis, ultricies eu diam sit amet, auctor ullamcorper enim.

      Proin metus tellus, rutrum ut elementum vitae, ullamcorper ac elit. Cras ut cursus libero, id fermentum ex. Donec sit amet nisi mollis, posuere eros at, pulvinar nibh. Nulla tristique vulputate viverra. Duis ac erat non libero rhoncus porttitor eu tincidunt sapien. Ut nunc ipsum, hendrerit ut convallis eget, scelerisque a tortor. Maecenas at mi vitae quam luctus feugiat in id dolor. Maecenas porttitor porttitor mi eu ultricies. Pellentesque erat diam, dignissim et egestas eu, suscipit quis eros. Donec arcu dolor, tincidunt a interdum nec, tristique non dolor.

      Praesent et ligula pulvinar, rutrum nunc vitae, pretium lacus. Phasellus mauris arcu, consequat a facilisis sit amet, lobortis vel felis. Cras efficitur finibus justo, hendrerit tempus turpis lobortis quis. Vivamus eu bibendum lacus. Etiam convallis, mi sed eleifend consectetur, sem est ultrices nisl, ut blandit arcu ante ac purus. Phasellus ac suscipit magna, dapibus tristique libero. Maecenas ac lectus interdum ante egestas maximus ac ut tortor. Mauris in est diam. Phasellus consectetur lacus et pulvinar aliquet. Fusce tincidunt a neque vitae pulvinar. Morbi risus massa, imperdiet consectetur justo id, placerat maximus ligula.

      Sed aliquet eros vel neque egestas fringilla. Nullam eget ligula lobortis, malesuada erat vitae, dictum tortor. Phasellus at nisl cursus, pulvinar ipsum et, imperdiet orci. Duis eget aliquet sapien. Curabitur varius eu ex in sollicitudin. Suspendisse ac tellus et tortor maximus tincidunt at a dolor. Suspendisse lacinia velit at ligula tristique condimentum. Vivamus sed facilisis urna. Suspendisse cursus aliquam tincidunt. Etiam eu eros luctus, pulvinar risus vel, pulvinar tellus. In in mattis urna. Donec nec nibh sed ante vestibulum pellentesque. Nunc sollicitudin ullamcorper luctus. Maecenas in ligula gravida, lacinia lorem eu, dapibus lectus.

      Nulla quis tellus luctus, rhoncus quam sed, pharetra nunc. Etiam sit amet tempus eros. Integer varius purus vitae mollis fringilla. Vestibulum viverra feugiat tempus. Integer feugiat felis risus, eget tincidunt leo congue quis. Mauris dictum volutpat dui vel mattis. Nulla facilisi. Fusce odio nunc, placerat vitae rhoncus ac, condimentum ac dui. Vestibulum metus sapien, mattis a sem ut, finibus faucibus risus. Vivamus sed sem vestibulum, semper elit ut, cursus augue. Proin sagittis nisl eget venenatis bibendum.

      Ut quis rutrum nisi, et condimentum nunc. Nunc varius iaculis ipsum, ac fringilla sem lobortis eget. Fusce fermentum velit mauris, sed hendrerit est tristique ac. Sed suscipit lacus eu justo pretium, ac euismod lacus pharetra. Pellentesque neque nunc, varius vel libero quis, convallis volutpat orci. Donec sem turpis, luctus ut facilisis sed, cursus non justo. Cras vel diam eu sapien gravida consectetur. Donec ac lectus eu neque venenatis consectetur at vitae magna. Nam suscipit varius fringilla. Cum sociis natoque penatibus et magnis dis parturient montes, nascetur ridiculus mus. Pellentesque dui est, consectetur eu fermentum et, posuere nec sem. In non placerat diam.

      Pellentesque sit amet risus libero. Aenean aliquam, neque at vestibulum elementum, leo purus viverra lorem, at finibus eros leo sed lacus. Etiam dictum eleifend dui, nec tempor urna varius a. Mauris ac interdum dui. Aliquam posuere feugiat ornare. Morbi ut tempus velit. Nulla facilisi.

      Cras viverra nisl et posuere congue. Etiam pharetra rutrum velit malesuada sagittis. Nunc metus magna, sagittis eget ligula vel, ullamcorper ullamcorper purus. Vivamus varius eros id sodales molestie. Nullam sed elit in lorem vehicula euismod. Nunc sit amet quam libero. Sed id efficitur dui. Ut vehicula posuere convallis. Nam sagittis elementum ipsum, lacinia tincidunt massa euismod sed. Donec ut nisl scelerisque, rutrum nunc mollis, fermentum lectus. Quisque blandit ipsum placerat orci lobortis mattis.

      Aliquam erat volutpat. In a lectus sit amet augue elementum congue ac aliquam diam. Ut at tortor vitae quam faucibus facilisis convallis eget ante. Nulla semper odio ac iaculis auctor. Mauris auctor metus ut felis fringilla, sit amet consequat neque elementum. Maecenas in convallis mauris. Pellentesque lectus ipsum, fermentum in ex nec, accumsan scelerisque lectus. Donec lacinia diam ipsum. Class aptent taciti sociosqu ad litora torquent per conubia nostra, per inceptos himenaeos. Proin sed orci vitae nunc condimentum pharetra. Maecenas commodo nibh sapien, at vestibulum nulla convallis nec. Morbi a condimentum est.

      Nullam ultricies dui sed arcu iaculis, vel vulputate enim dapibus. Ut sit amet ante ac lorem fermentum venenatis. Aliquam erat volutpat. Quisque ultricies vehicula placerat. Donec rhoncus diam ligula, sagittis condimentum nisi dictum id. Nullam tincidunt, neque eu placerat porta, elit elit scelerisque ipsum, eget bibendum tortor diam vitae diam. Sed eu varius ante. Pellentesque id lectus lacus. Proin suscipit tristique maximus. Sed quis ullamcorper tortor, a varius nisl. Nullam in tincidunt mi, at sodales tellus.

      Suspendisse luctus dictum auctor. Maecenas sodales lorem non iaculis porta. In et venenatis lorem, sit amet cursus diam. Pellentesque feugiat ullamcorper ligula, id sollicitudin risus. Aenean erat mi, tincidunt sit amet eleifend in, porttitor varius leo. In in maximus augue. Proin in arcu ligula.

      Aliquam pretium ante dui, in gravida urna laoreet in. In at neque finibus, pellentesque urna non, pulvinar justo. Suspendisse elementum ultricies lectus ac ultrices. Nam pulvinar est vitae interdum suscipit. Cum sociis natoque penatibus et magnis dis parturient montes, nascetur ridiculus mus. Integer venenatis elit ac eros porta, dictum scelerisque lectus egestas. Nam fermentum eget augue maximus egestas.

      Nulla sit amet dolor nec urna elementum aliquet. Quisque id sem aliquet, semper massa pulvinar, mollis elit. Integer varius a nisl ut auctor. Suspendisse potenti. Curabitur maximus faucibus ligula, sit amet iaculis ante vestibulum vitae. Cras vulputate mollis est, a sollicitudin mi tristique vitae. Curabitur sed dapibus felis, ac suscipit arcu. Maecenas dapibus vel ex id fringilla. Ut maximus blandit efficitur. Suspendisse porta aliquam enim. Vestibulum lobortis consectetur arcu, et lobortis metus bibendum et. Nam elementum ex nec felis maximus accumsan. Aenean id est venenatis, eleifend dui ac, dictum risus. Pellentesque pretium, lorem vel aliquet auctor, nibh diam sollicitudin libero, in mollis velit turpis id arcu. Nulla volutpat, augue non lobortis mollis, ex tortor tincidunt odio, a tempor leo lectus sit amet sem.

      Aenean tristique tempus neque, at eleifend erat maximus sagittis. Curabitur eu quam quis risus lobortis auctor. Sed vestibulum eros nec neque ultricies luctus. Proin sagittis nisl arcu, fermentum tristique tellus consequat eget. Nam sed dui a nisi euismod vestibulum eu at sem. Nunc ultricies, tellus ac consequat ornare, augue purus imperdiet enim, ac egestas diam magna maximus metus. Donec auctor gravida augue. Curabitur nec mi massa. Mauris et lacinia massa.

      Nulla facilisi. Nunc sagittis eleifend leo sit amet fringilla. In faucibus nec quam sed varius. Pellentesque tincidunt lorem vitae odio interdum venenatis. Sed dictum ac odio et feugiat. Integer ultrices nunc vitae sem efficitur hendrerit. Interdum et malesuada fames ac ante ipsum primis in faucibus. Mauris molestie mauris felis, vel ultricies mauris rutrum sed. Duis mauris risus, efficitur sed massa sed, ullamcorper venenatis tellus. Nam gravida nibh ac risus tincidunt, vitae malesuada arcu fermentum. Phasellus et leo et purus consequat consectetur. Nulla eget metus risus. Curabitur luctus libero mi, at fringilla orci maximus dapibus. Sed sed ipsum enim.

      Aliquam erat volutpat. Cras a libero sapien. Vivamus ullamcorper imperdiet quam, sit amet maximus metus ultrices a. Maecenas pharetra ipsum nec magna vehicula posuere. Quisque eget neque dolor. Duis porttitor nunc sit amet libero elementum aliquet. Nulla faucibus felis imperdiet eros posuere convallis. Suspendisse ultrices luctus nibh, et cursus orci tempor et. Proin rhoncus, risus vel rhoncus imperdiet, lacus dolor auctor justo, at ullamcorper purus justo ut libero. Cras eget orci at nulla maximus ultrices.

      Maecenas gravida dignissim dui, porta gravida augue porttitor vel. Ut nec posuere sapien, quis commodo dolor. Vivamus dolor elit, pellentesque sed pharetra nec, accumsan in massa. Pellentesque sed scelerisque ligula. Aliquam pellentesque dignissim metus quis facilisis. Sed tortor sem, euismod eu erat eu, volutpat dignissim nibh. Curabitur a nisi ullamcorper ligula semper eleifend. Mauris mattis porttitor est, id dignissim arcu convallis sit amet. Integer id tellus quis lorem laoreet volutpat. Vestibulum pharetra non odio ut vehicula. In quis massa ac tortor finibus laoreet. Nunc nec pretium mauris. Nam lacinia eu justo iaculis auctor. Curabitur ultrices nisl vitae nisi auctor consequat.

      Curabitur eleifend, nisi pretium pretium pretium, sapien nibh maximus orci, et ultricies neque leo eget nisi. Praesent semper, ipsum sed vehicula tincidunt, neque libero lacinia purus, nec interdum nisi tellus non leo. Integer non purus cursus, convallis nunc sit amet, accumsan felis. Pellentesque consectetur metus vitae fringilla semper. Duis dictum tortor tortor, ac dictum est imperdiet vel. Vestibulum aliquam tortor eget magna pellentesque, nec ullamcorper erat convallis. Proin id tempus justo. Fusce nibh ligula, sagittis eget felis sit amet, rhoncus consectetur lorem.

      Sed eu placerat sapien. Sed sodales blandit elit. Nulla posuere ligula quis ultricies porta. In malesuada aliquet sem ut commodo. Integer at libero sit amet neque condimentum malesuada non sed ipsum. Sed congue imperdiet rutrum. Praesent eget consectetur lacus. Morbi urna urna, facilisis at sollicitudin sit amet, sodales et turpis. Pellentesque ante ex, dignissim vel sapien a, vestibulum feugiat eros. Aenean fringilla nulla nec est sollicitudin, non malesuada odio porttitor. Integer pharetra lorem eget velit convallis, nec ultrices dolor placerat.

      In volutpat nibh condimentum arcu mollis facilisis. Fusce iaculis diam non felis aliquam gravida. Sed blandit vel turpis vitae pharetra. Curabitur ut viverra purus. Fusce nec nulla sed nunc semper tincidunt. Proin libero mi, vehicula vitae enim non, ornare feugiat arcu. In convallis laoreet nibh, non mattis purus volutpat eu. Suspendisse lacinia at nisl quis egestas. Donec condimentum risus euismod orci sollicitudin aliquet consequat vel nulla. Curabitur nec aliquam libero. Sed auctor dictum eleifend. Nunc at elit aliquam libero fringilla mollis non vitae urna.

      Mauris elit arcu, posuere a dapibus in, malesuada quis libero. Maecenas est quam, placerat et tincidunt id, interdum eu urna. Vestibulum sed eleifend erat, nec porttitor velit. Fusce leo metus, commodo sed sodales ac, dapibus sed sem. Quisque id quam ac sem elementum euismod a vel tellus. Integer hendrerit maximus viverra. Vestibulum aliquet scelerisque sapien, eget dignissim felis aliquet gravida. Sed ac felis rhoncus, finibus urna id, scelerisque dolor. Quisque maximus sagittis ipsum eget blandit. Curabitur sed metus mauris. Nunc eu rhoncus nisl. Curabitur luctus ante vitae feugiat iaculis. Phasellus fringilla convallis magna, non faucibus nunc porta quis. Aenean vel fringilla diam. Donec vitae lorem in tellus maximus vehicula in eu neque. Cras non massa iaculis, posuere lorem nec, tempus felis.

      Morbi dapibus venenatis risus, quis aliquet leo iaculis sit amet. Nam quis ornare ipsum, ac blandit sem. Donec iaculis, felis eu placerat luctus, odio tellus eleifend nulla, sit amet ultricies quam nunc in sapien. Donec id pretium dui, eu consectetur ipsum. Donec et placerat ligula, vel sodales orci. Vivamus sollicitudin tempus porta. Proin justo massa, hendrerit a arcu quis, condimentum elementum mi. Nulla varius, augue at eleifend bibendum, magna odio convallis arcu, sollicitudin auctor sem mauris ut elit. Suspendisse et tellus dapibus, suscipit nisi nec, lobortis erat. Vestibulum ac enim a tellus suscipit imperdiet ut sit amet diam. Quisque nulla turpis, condimentum quis lobortis vitae, iaculis id arcu. In varius, felis id vehicula efficitur, mauris eros lobortis arcu, a elementum est neque ac tortor.

      Nam sem nisl, vehicula non neque at, commodo pretium felis. Curabitur scelerisque magna a metus varius, sed rhoncus arcu pulvinar. Vivamus mollis mollis dui, non tincidunt tellus gravida quis. Donec lacinia nulla ac ipsum lacinia, at pellentesque tortor venenatis. Suspendisse et lacus finibus, dapibus ligula ut, consectetur nunc. Fusce tortor ipsum, accumsan nec auctor sit amet, tempor a ex. Sed volutpat dolor lorem, vel commodo est semper id. Nulla facilisi. Curabitur mauris nibh, volutpat eget ligula non, tristique aliquam odio. Duis vestibulum dolor ut tellus placerat, sit amet hendrerit urna condimentum. Vivamus dolor massa, egestas nec eros condimentum, aliquam dignissim mi. Aliquam laoreet sollicitudin aliquam. Sed pellentesque sodales lorem, sed molestie felis fermentum ut. Donec pulvinar laoreet arcu ac dapibus. Vestibulum ante ipsum primis in faucibus orci luctus et ultrices posuere cubilia Curae; Curabitur dapibus blandit massa ut volutpat.

      Aliquam non imperdiet purus, sed auctor nunc. Curabitur pharetra ante odio, eget tristique libero finibus vitae. Maecenas pharetra metus non felis placerat, sed auctor elit porta. Integer porta in nunc in placerat. Sed id tortor eget justo luctus lobortis. Pellentesque semper rutrum augue, at interdum diam convallis quis. Sed rhoncus, tortor eget maximus finibus, quam felis auctor lacus, quis commodo turpis lectus vel metus. Vivamus dolor nibh, gravida vitae tempus non, lacinia sed erat. Sed neque purus, mollis placerat blandit in, fringilla quis mauris. Mauris maximus at turpis vitae commodo. Ut quam eros, tempor vitae iaculis non, pellentesque id quam. Praesent blandit tempor odio id sollicitudin.

      Duis dapibus ornare turpis, vitae feugiat dui laoreet feugiat. Donec hendrerit lectus sit amet lacinia venenatis. Morbi ut gravida orci, sed rhoncus risus. Vivamus sit amet ante imperdiet, rhoncus eros eget, rutrum libero. Morbi in tristique dui. Morbi vel imperdiet metus, sit amet sollicitudin nulla. Donec placerat quam vel turpis laoreet fermentum. Duis interdum pellentesque ornare. Donec vehicula ultricies massa ac tincidunt. Integer efficitur dui non urna scelerisque, laoreet consequat neque sodales. Sed eu scelerisque mi, a sagittis enim. Donec eleifend libero vitae nibh porta ornare. Pellentesque sagittis erat quis sagittis finibus. In porttitor varius nulla, sed iaculis lorem vehicula ullamcorper. Class aptent taciti sociosqu ad litora torquent per conubia nostra, per inceptos himenaeos.

      Aliquam sit amet justo libero. Pellentesque at ipsum id justo maximus interdum quis a nibh. Vestibulum elementum eros ac augue rhoncus, quis sagittis velit laoreet. Integer non semper risus, id volutpat justo. Etiam porta tempus risus sed congue. Morbi sed luctus purus, id luctus lorem. Aliquam suscipit urna tempor elit blandit, varius ullamcorper orci congue. Quisque varius ullamcorper ex vestibulum vestibulum. Aliquam ultricies venenatis enim et tincidunt.

      Nulla facilisi. Integer dignissim est nec nisi cursus, iaculis tempus lacus pellentesque. Suspendisse rhoncus tristique turpis, vitae cursus sapien congue vitae. Proin at bibendum ipsum. Suspendisse id porta leo, sollicitudin fringilla odio. Etiam in nulla felis. Pellentesque molestie diam orci, non bibendum orci ornare ut.

      Vivamus pharetra suscipit dolor, eget malesuada eros. Pellentesque id facilisis arcu. Etiam sed pellentesque ligula, rhoncus faucibus est. Interdum et malesuada fames ac ante ipsum primis in faucibus. Praesent at ullamcorper metus, a blandit risus. Sed rhoncus sagittis blandit. Phasellus feugiat convallis est, nec facilisis urna dictum in. Nunc sit amet aliquam arcu. Morbi tincidunt facilisis enim, id aliquam ex convallis nec. Morbi id lorem et diam hendrerit volutpat cursus sed leo. Praesent sodales lacus ut sollicitudin venenatis. In pulvinar dictum orci vitae faucibus. Nulla facilisi. Vestibulum a elementum nibh. Integer euismod, diam vitae bibendum vulputate, sapien quam faucibus enim, ut convallis elit neque in leo. Praesent iaculis nec urna eu condimentum.

      Nunc sagittis odio vel ultrices interdum. Quisque in augue vel purus blandit porta fermentum nec leo. Praesent cursus sapien in condimentum tincidunt. Cras mollis est ipsum, sed dapibus eros hendrerit vehicula. Sed tortor nisi, mattis quis porttitor ac, pellentesque id nisl. Nulla facilisi. Suspendisse id dapibus nulla. Quisque ipsum metus, porttitor quis egestas sed, fringilla blandit mi. Nullam vel ex efficitur, porttitor magna vitae, consectetur erat. Morbi lobortis risus eleifend, pharetra nisi ut, aliquet augue. Nam in mauris est. Sed mattis vulputate nunc vel varius. Integer dapibus risus et libero interdum, nec semper est accumsan. Pellentesque blandit velit a sollicitudin tincidunt. Sed nec purus nibh. Nam eget tristique odio.

      Class aptent taciti sociosqu ad litora torquent per conubia nostra, per inceptos himenaeos. Quisque dignissim augue arcu, eget fermentum dui egestas ultrices. Donec finibus sit amet magna id suscipit. In quis justo a magna malesuada aliquet. Nullam sed nunc aliquam, scelerisque ligula ac, interdum turpis. Quisque mollis venenatis est, at congue magna suscipit eu. In quis lacus posuere, hendrerit velit et, ornare leo. Nullam facilisis tellus bibendum, viverra urna ut, malesuada enim. Nulla tincidunt augue a enim maximus semper. Nullam feugiat lorem risus, ac ullamcorper ipsum pharetra at. Nunc ornare nisl vitae nunc imperdiet congue.

      Pellentesque habitant morbi tristique senectus et netus et malesuada fames ac turpis egestas. Nam enim ante, venenatis eget nisi ac, pulvinar pretium nibh. Fusce at tellus dignissim lorem bibendum tempus et id ligula. Cras rhoncus hendrerit lorem et porttitor. Vivamus mollis eros ut nisi pellentesque sagittis. Phasellus in euismod erat. Aliquam erat volutpat. Nullam elementum neque eget diam sagittis, sed vulputate libero mattis. Fusce at felis dolor. Nulla ante justo, consectetur eu odio a, vulputate pulvinar nulla. Nulla lacinia ante eget elit accumsan lobortis. Nam eleifend malesuada nisi, nec ultricies erat fermentum vel. Etiam euismod non sem et posuere.

      Nam ultricies lobortis sapien in finibus. Duis elementum arcu sit amet massa elementum, quis ultrices orci sagittis. Donec fermentum sollicitudin iaculis. Morbi aliquam fermentum erat, sed auctor ante fringilla id. Aliquam nec tellus sollicitudin, vulputate diam non, consectetur massa. Donec lacinia lorem at porta semper. Vivamus accumsan lectus metus, vel efficitur erat auctor eget. Pellentesque habitant morbi tristique senectus et netus et malesuada fames ac turpis egestas. Etiam ipsum enim, malesuada eget ultricies vitae, iaculis sed tellus. Pellentesque habitant morbi tristique senectus et netus et malesuada fames ac turpis egestas. Maecenas faucibus justo turpis, vitae convallis ipsum iaculis laoreet. Integer ut mollis lorem. Nunc et rhoncus nunc. Aliquam accumsan, est sit amet tempor porttitor, libero turpis porttitor eros, in bibendum ligula lacus et orci. Maecenas ut orci tellus. In elementum nunc odio, a porta diam aliquet in.

      Nam aliquet hendrerit nisi, ut pulvinar odio pharetra quis. Donec aliquet, ipsum lobortis vulputate mollis, mauris nibh pharetra metus, nec gravida ipsum nibh sollicitudin lorem. Maecenas tellus quam, dignissim et lacus vitae, aliquet scelerisque magna. Ut semper accumsan ullamcorper. Nam leo lorem, vehicula facilisis felis vitae, feugiat sagittis magna. Quisque ipsum odio, tempor et nisl lacinia, porta laoreet orci. Nullam luctus sit amet orci convallis varius. Proin malesuada commodo velit in pulvinar. In gravida eleifend magna sed elementum. Quisque quis dui sed elit efficitur accumsan.

      Morbi in lectus accumsan turpis dapibus viverra a dictum dolor. Pellentesque lacinia risus eget imperdiet congue. Morbi et ultrices mauris. Nulla facilisi. Vivamus facilisis dui vel volutpat efficitur. Integer sed ante vitae sapien feugiat sollicitudin. Maecenas ac auctor dolor. Nulla tempor sit amet neque sed feugiat. Vestibulum eleifend sapien eu libero tristique tempus. Phasellus auctor diam ac imperdiet iaculis.

      Duis condimentum fringilla nisi sed scelerisque. Donec rhoncus augue eu purus pellentesque blandit. Maecenas ac lectus vel arcu mattis feugiat. Integer gravida sed sapien ut commodo. Aenean volutpat viverra velit, quis semper risus finibus sit amet. Phasellus venenatis urna nec mattis condimentum. Mauris ut dictum metus. Sed elementum rhoncus libero nec tristique. Nunc pharetra rutrum lectus, ut volutpat nisi ullamcorper eu. Sed elementum semper ligula fringilla lobortis. Cras porttitor malesuada dui, vel porttitor augue vehicula et. Morbi mollis convallis leo eget mattis. In a enim a tortor malesuada maximus eget sit amet ex. Fusce interdum vulputate ex, ac porta risus. Praesent placerat, metus vel accumsan egestas, tortor leo rutrum dui, quis feugiat lectus justo eu nibh.

      Nullam sed vehicula eros. Nulla interdum pretium tincidunt. Lorem ipsum dolor sit amet, consectetur adipiscing elit. Quisque vulputate imperdiet nulla, vitae dictum mi imperdiet nec. Praesent et orci vel tellus aliquet consequat sed sed metus. Nunc pellentesque lorem metus, id cursus nisi ullamcorper non. Nullam vitae massa orci. Donec erat nulla, rhoncus id justo et, sagittis aliquam eros. Donec ac lorem ut leo congue rutrum non at quam. Vestibulum id sollicitudin odio, ac sodales nisl. Morbi vulputate ac mauris at aliquam.

      Sed eu purus egestas, bibendum justo eget, fermentum ipsum. Suspendisse luctus lacus arcu. Donec at justo velit. Aenean posuere dolor sit amet sem fermentum laoreet. Cras placerat mi sed lectus maximus aliquet. Curabitur ut nisi viverra, pulvinar metus quis, sagittis mauris. Vestibulum ante ipsum primis in faucibus orci luctus et ultrices posuere cubilia Curae; Nam tortor purus, molestie a leo vitae, euismod ullamcorper magna.

      Suspendisse luctus feugiat rhoncus. Cras et mattis nisl, quis posuere orci. Morbi scelerisque leo nec lacus tincidunt, nec ultricies sapien consequat. Quisque egestas nulla nunc, in luctus sapien iaculis cursus. Vivamus consectetur mollis ullamcorper. In pulvinar pretium enim, sed condimentum ligula ultricies ut. Nullam tempor lacus ac neque mattis dignissim. Nunc ante mauris, elementum a magna sit amet, cursus sagittis odio. Aliquam fringilla rutrum arcu ut rhoncus.

      Phasellus vel nisi vel odio consequat bibendum nec ac enim. Quisque blandit neque ligula, in porttitor nulla aliquam quis. Mauris non lacus enim. Donec ultricies vel magna sed egestas. Vivamus laoreet tempor dolor. In metus felis, venenatis scelerisque rhoncus eget, tempus a neque. Pellentesque habitant morbi tristique senectus et netus et malesuada fames ac turpis egestas. In quis erat hendrerit, commodo ligula id, mollis nunc. Integer cursus diam sed ligula lobortis consequat.

      Nullam vehicula turpis sit amet vestibulum pulvinar. Donec lobortis vel tellus ut aliquam. Nullam sit amet nibh sit amet sapien dignissim aliquam. Sed efficitur non massa in molestie. Nunc quis auctor mauris. Curabitur suscipit placerat quam, non commodo urna aliquet in. Sed sed lectus sem. Vestibulum ante ipsum primis in faucibus orci luctus et ultrices posuere cubilia Curae; Phasellus malesuada nisi eget iaculis pellentesque.

      Nullam tempor vitae eros quis imperdiet. Morbi efficitur risus dictum ex malesuada placerat. Fusce cursus, nulla a feugiat congue, turpis odio rutrum dui, et tempor ex enim sed mi. Sed interdum magna et metus pharetra, id eleifend lacus interdum. Integer eget magna sit amet sem accumsan condimentum. Duis elit leo, blandit vel eleifend sit amet, condimentum sit amet nibh. In eget fermentum erat. Phasellus enim sapien, aliquet vitae lobortis sed, facilisis nec est. Aliquam et ipsum erat. Mauris suscipit magna eu sodales iaculis.

      Cras eleifend commodo metus tempus sagittis. Ut quam erat, luctus a lectus sit amet, faucibus tempor ligula. Sed nec tristique nisl, quis placerat metus. Vivamus elementum risus in viverra eleifend. Fusce nisl metus, semper nec fermentum a, ultrices et odio. Mauris hendrerit vehicula risus non fringilla. Nulla sed faucibus augue. Praesent pharetra imperdiet velit, nec sagittis quam molestie vitae. Etiam venenatis ut quam eget iaculis.

      Duis posuere elit id risus sagittis molestie ac non urna. Ut leo nulla, viverra id nisl vel, feugiat sollicitudin odio. Duis vestibulum arcu a augue consequat, et tincidunt ipsum vulputate. Morbi aliquet euismod libero ac pulvinar. Nam eu est et ligula hendrerit consectetur sed nec nunc. Donec egestas placerat orci porttitor porta. Sed non risus auctor, consequat ligula in, ullamcorper erat. Vestibulum ultricies tempor porta. Sed bibendum ipsum vitae est placerat rutrum. Nunc id aliquet dolor. Quisque et varius purus, id aliquet erat. Duis posuere elit efficitur, pulvinar magna non, pellentesque lectus.

      Proin sit amet tortor tristique enim porta tincidunt. Etiam eu sapien non risus dictum efficitur. Maecenas maximus ac magna vitae rutrum. Aenean varius, justo vel viverra sagittis, sem augue vehicula nulla, ac sagittis turpis augue et velit. Vestibulum ante ipsum primis in faucibus orci luctus et ultrices posuere cubilia Curae; Etiam lorem quam, facilisis ut metus non, fermentum ultricies sapien. Morbi pulvinar nunc et risus feugiat accumsan quis semper sem. Integer volutpat ipsum orci, sed ornare urna tincidunt quis. Integer gravida, nibh nec aliquam ultrices, tortor sapien accumsan sapien, sed euismod magna nunc quis eros. Suspendisse neque mi, condimentum vel hendrerit in, maximus vel est. Nunc lacinia luctus vehicula. Aenean diam dolor, viverra nec arcu et, imperdiet lobortis mauris.

      Duis pulvinar nulla in ex lacinia faucibus. Pellentesque ut mauris congue, tempus turpis nec, pulvinar elit. Praesent nec risus felis. Morbi eleifend lacus nunc. Nulla fermentum rhoncus odio ut iaculis. Pellentesque vehicula odio ut dolor fringilla, scelerisque rutrum sapien dictum. Quisque fringilla, lacus in hendrerit venenatis, neque lectus mollis urna, eu mattis ante urna sit amet mauris. Nullam eget posuere lectus. Proin mollis justo in mi sagittis volutpat. Nunc eros leo, scelerisque at commodo bibendum, elementum nec elit. Vivamus vitae eros scelerisque, elementum velit vel, suscipit metus. Vivamus ullamcorper ipsum diam, in porta mi laoreet vel.

      Proin finibus lorem sem, in varius nunc lacinia quis. Donec rhoncus, lectus nec tristique venenatis, lacus nulla facilisis ipsum, a feugiat augue est id tortor. Nunc auctor blandit aliquet. Morbi tempor tellus et tincidunt dapibus. Phasellus vel efficitur massa. Nunc venenatis elit a risus aliquet, sed malesuada metus ultricies. Phasellus nec felis enim. Integer pretium vestibulum leo in gravida.

      Suspendisse egestas libero odio, id sodales tellus auctor vel. Nullam luctus tortor ac justo tincidunt, sed aliquet mauris tempus. Nunc egestas ullamcorper tortor eu vestibulum. Sed efficitur lobortis elit vel elementum. Duis eu posuere dui. Nam sodales eleifend leo, non ultricies nulla. Vestibulum augue ipsum, ullamcorper vel tortor vehicula, eleifend auctor libero. Nulla facilisi. Suspendisse nec enim lobortis, dapibus augue quis, tempus odio.

      Nulla ut quam elementum, euismod elit ac, faucibus augue. Lorem ipsum dolor sit amet, consectetur adipiscing elit. Maecenas erat arcu, blandit et elit non, faucibus vehicula ante. Nulla eu elit blandit tortor lacinia hendrerit scelerisque vitae dui. Nulla pretium euismod convallis. Fusce interdum, neque sit amet congue auctor, leo justo dictum libero, quis elementum nisl ante nec libero. Nunc fringilla nisi id metus hendrerit rutrum. Sed sapien nisi, luctus ut ipsum in, vestibulum mattis augue. Cras eleifend fermentum rhoncus. Aliquam ac rhoncus metus. Vestibulum mollis mauris vitae justo lobortis commodo. Vivamus non lorem mollis, ultricies diam sed, ultrices lectus. Phasellus commodo pellentesque magna nec eleifend. Nunc posuere eros eu efficitur pulvinar. Sed nec aliquet felis, ut volutpat leo. Sed a neque placerat, consequat quam vel, elementum augue.

      Duis ac nunc eu est volutpat mattis. Suspendisse bibendum velit non ante condimentum gravida. Suspendisse sit amet vulputate lorem. Quisque vestibulum faucibus nisl, ac fermentum ex tristique et. Nam suscipit elit et tortor dictum, eu commodo odio dignissim. Morbi ultrices cursus dolor vel luctus. Nulla non purus aliquam, egestas nulla ac, volutpat tortor. Sed molestie dolor a erat feugiat, a semper sapien malesuada. Aenean sit amet eros ac felis ornare maximus. Vivamus imperdiet volutpat nisl ac placerat. Curabitur non porta magna, id commodo urna. Vivamus mattis tortor bibendum efficitur posuere. Suspendisse potenti. Aenean imperdiet nulla in magna iaculis, sit amet volutpat arcu dignissim.

      Praesent aliquet tristique rhoncus. Sed dignissim orci vitae accumsan maximus. Suspendisse potenti. Aliquam erat volutpat. Pellentesque ac justo non turpis ultricies sagittis. Etiam volutpat rutrum finibus. Sed porta dolor enim, a bibendum ipsum elementum in. Morbi sagittis tortor odio, mattis luctus ex ultrices ac. Etiam nisl massa, sollicitudin id venenatis eu, rutrum nec risus. Nullam rutrum mi et tristique volutpat. Morbi convallis ex nibh, egestas rhoncus est scelerisque ac. Sed commodo nisl nunc.

      Aliquam finibus consectetur mi, nec tristique urna tincidunt vitae. Integer vestibulum nunc velit. Nullam scelerisque gravida nisi, eget bibendum felis maximus in. Ut varius commodo faucibus. Sed elementum venenatis condimentum. Nam sem mauris, interdum facilisis nisi non, commodo vulputate ligula. Maecenas diam justo, mattis et interdum et, ullamcorper dictum enim. Sed sed diam leo. Nam facilisis ligula justo, vitae laoreet risus gravida vel. Quisque pellentesque, orci eget interdum semper, metus libero euismod mi, eget bibendum purus ex ac tortor.

      Donec molestie eget odio in ullamcorper. Duis vestibulum congue ligula eu molestie. Donec imperdiet posuere tellus. Cras at tempor leo. Aenean gravida porttitor dolor ut eleifend. Nulla facilisi. Etiam quam libero, cursus vitae rhoncus efficitur, tristique eu nibh. Nulla dui odio, fringilla sed nisi in, ornare fermentum mauris.

      Mauris ultricies nulla cursus, cursus tortor quis, faucibus sapien. Etiam congue risus mi, sit amet dictum ante tincidunt nec. Nulla vel scelerisque dolor, vitae condimentum lorem. Cras nec mi pulvinar, cursus magna vitae, congue nisi. Cras massa mauris, congue et sapien eu, porttitor posuere massa. Ut sagittis sit amet orci gravida tempor. Ut non est ac ex iaculis varius at vitae tellus. Nam ipsum dui, feugiat quis mauris a, tincidunt pharetra justo. Donec ex justo, convallis in tellus a, ullamcorper bibendum nisi. Morbi urna lectus, pulvinar sed elit id, venenatis congue turpis.

      Aenean metus urna, sodales eu velit sed, pharetra congue lectus. Aenean tellus tellus, tempus vitae lectus et, commodo facilisis erat. Pellentesque sit amet lacus eget elit fringilla sollicitudin. Donec congue purus a facilisis faucibus. Morbi mollis lacus vitae libero dignissim, at congue mauris sodales. Nulla ornare enim at ultricies consequat. Praesent diam enim, feugiat eu nisi vitae, dapibus interdum lacus. Sed volutpat nisi non accumsan venenatis. Interdum et malesuada fames ac ante ipsum primis in faucibus. Fusce ultrices hendrerit elementum. Maecenas ac gravida ex. Donec aliquet suscipit mauris nec feugiat. Vestibulum placerat augue mi, eget rutrum mi mattis id. Mauris aliquam et elit sed malesuada.

      Nunc vulputate hendrerit libero, eget semper elit scelerisque vel. Mauris a est justo. Aenean commodo, justo at vulputate bibendum, velit massa tempus nisl, quis dapibus libero dui eu erat. Quisque vitae lacinia libero. Vivamus tincidunt venenatis cursus. Duis eget elementum ipsum. Proin ut nunc ut diam vulputate pharetra nec vel magna. In hac habitasse platea dictumst. Praesent et velit euismod, vulputate lectus ut, dapibus leo. Vestibulum cursus pulvinar quam, eu fringilla elit rhoncus non. Curabitur eget ante nec lorem venenatis lobortis at ac nulla. Cras luctus diam est, vitae finibus mauris imperdiet nec. In venenatis a libero ac mattis.

      Suspendisse vehicula lectus sit amet placerat venenatis. Suspendisse eget odio vel justo facilisis pharetra id vitae dolor. Aenean enim risus, fermentum non mattis eget, vestibulum at neque. Nunc ullamcorper lectus et mi scelerisque tristique. Nullam non euismod arcu, eu ultricies massa. Proin condimentum sit amet orci in interdum. Nulla vitae lacinia leo. Cras non augue sed ex rutrum mattis vitae quis purus. Donec ultrices posuere ante, id tristique quam laoreet vel. Vestibulum eu neque ac libero condimentum fermentum. Etiam efficitur, ligula nec porta rutrum, tortor nunc viverra lacus, sit amet iaculis diam turpis nec urna. Mauris orci sapien, vestibulum at dictum ut, euismod pretium nibh.

      Pellentesque sodales, dui nec auctor lacinia, metus libero convallis libero, in vehicula odio tortor at eros. Curabitur pellentesque erat nec arcu aliquet, sed varius libero pulvinar. Curabitur sollicitudin, orci ac molestie sollicitudin, nibh justo semper velit, id ultricies orci ligula eget nibh. Lorem ipsum dolor sit amet, consectetur adipiscing elit. Ut non tellus tellus. Donec auctor nisl ut ante laoreet, quis maximus nisi vestibulum. Vestibulum ut magna erat. Praesent eleifend mauris at felis tincidunt, et lacinia metus rhoncus. Nam tristique elit at tincidunt efficitur.

      Cras vel sem turpis. Vestibulum ante ipsum primis in faucibus orci luctus et ultrices posuere cubilia Curae; Nam facilisis purus ut tellus laoreet, at luctus nisl dictum. Suspendisse orci arcu, efficitur eget rutrum vitae, laoreet a sapien. Sed ac maximus ex. Phasellus posuere, enim vel feugiat vulputate, mauris tortor consequat massa, non commodo libero eros et nisl. Maecenas consequat, odio auctor placerat fringilla, ex urna dapibus urna, in finibus nulla turpis sed magna. Cum sociis natoque penatibus et magnis dis parturient montes, nascetur ridiculus mus. In egestas massa ac placerat dapibus. Praesent laoreet aliquet odio, id luctus lorem lobortis et. Aenean metus leo, finibus sed lobortis eget, luctus egestas felis. Pellentesque auctor quis lorem quis venenatis. Duis risus ipsum, tempus nec quam a, dictum rutrum quam.

      Nulla in condimentum nunc. Duis non porta libero, eu bibendum orci. Donec accumsan mattis tellus id efficitur. Ut ac commodo elit. Pellentesque habitant morbi tristique senectus et netus et malesuada fames ac turpis egestas. Nulla et purus porta, vehicula nulla eget, blandit dolor. Interdum et malesuada fames ac ante ipsum primis in faucibus. In imperdiet consequat ante. Pellentesque ac gravida massa. Donec efficitur commodo metus. Donec vel diam sagittis, sollicitudin lorem non, placerat arcu.

      Praesent lobortis pulvinar elit, in posuere leo mollis quis. Mauris scelerisque lorem vitae mattis interdum. Lorem ipsum dolor sit amet, consectetur adipiscing elit. Morbi in ipsum ac velit mattis mattis. Suspendisse eu finibus purus, non aliquam arcu. Quisque sit amet arcu quis tortor pharetra blandit. Cras semper gravida lorem, vitae pellentesque leo tempor sed. Donec venenatis hendrerit lacus sed auctor. Maecenas dictum porttitor nisi a malesuada. Aliquam ligula urna, rhoncus id bibendum ac, pharetra id nibh. Sed lacus orci, tempor in est vel, consequat porta nisi.

      Phasellus leo mi, tempus quis vehicula vel, molestie tincidunt turpis. Vivamus vulputate commodo massa. Donec varius, urna a consequat maximus, magna mi viverra nunc, non tempus tellus felis ut eros. Phasellus nec congue ipsum. Maecenas pretium tempor arcu, ut congue metus semper sit amet. In ut lobortis ligula. Etiam pharetra ipsum at sapien scelerisque faucibus nec nec nisl. Donec tincidunt aliquam neque eget mollis. Integer sed quam a tellus tempus faucibus. Fusce eget iaculis leo, at vehicula libero. Donec vulputate vestibulum dolor, et dignissim augue hendrerit non. Vestibulum auctor, lectus mollis varius scelerisque, neque odio euismod est, quis egestas nisl mauris at est. Etiam mollis congue tortor ut posuere. In malesuada felis sollicitudin, placerat eros quis, volutpat augue. Nullam ut imperdiet leo.

      Aenean euismod eget erat non porta. Maecenas ut sem eu augue condimentum sagittis a bibendum libero. Fusce finibus auctor erat, iaculis luctus lorem aliquam a. Donec feugiat sem quis leo rhoncus, eget finibus purus ultricies. Nulla facilisi. Fusce lobortis faucibus orci vitae malesuada. Etiam molestie nunc ac lacus semper vulputate. Aliquam fermentum enim sed metus consectetur varius. Phasellus accumsan elit eu mauris mollis, in viverra velit imperdiet. Aenean velit justo, placerat vitae purus sit amet, laoreet accumsan nunc. Duis feugiat dignissim mauris sit amet porttitor. Nulla in feugiat arcu. Morbi dictum tortor eget mi ornare, eu bibendum elit luctus. Pellentesque mattis, tellus egestas viverra semper, mi tellus sodales felis, a venenatis metus est id justo.

      Morbi eget ullamcorper magna, et mattis ligula. Duis non neque eu erat luctus lacinia vitae in neque. Aliquam sollicitudin tristique nisl, eget tincidunt felis venenatis non. Donec nec suscipit arcu. Morbi a rutrum justo, vel porttitor lacus. Praesent bibendum sapien at lectus sodales pretium. Vestibulum cursus elit quam, at ullamcorper ante pellentesque ac. Fusce tincidunt malesuada nulla, vel vulputate nisl sodales sed. Aliquam cursus mauris in libero pretium tristique vel eu sapien. Fusce quam tellus, lacinia in tempor non, malesuada nec nibh.

      Pellentesque id tortor blandit neque tempor tempus. In sit amet tellus lorem. Praesent accumsan convallis est sed finibus. Phasellus vitae eros eget ligula ultrices pulvinar. Sed eu luctus purus. Nullam leo nisl, rutrum tempor nulla eu, vestibulum bibendum nisi. Fusce ac dui fermentum, tempus urna id, ullamcorper ex. Vestibulum ante ipsum primis in faucibus orci luctus et ultrices posuere cubilia Curae; Donec ullamcorper mattis lorem, vitae interdum neque euismod ac. Aenean leo leo, ultrices ultrices nunc eget, laoreet porttitor turpis. Morbi ultricies sodales ante, ornare sollicitudin quam mattis id. Cras pharetra vitae lectus nec fringilla.

      Donec cursus id ante eu venenatis. Vivamus blandit fermentum dapibus. Suspendisse quam sapien, ornare a felis eu, feugiat dictum erat. Sed sit amet nisi in ligula facilisis facilisis sit amet ac quam. Curabitur tincidunt dictum gravida. Aenean semper tortor a sodales tempor. Aliquam auctor porttitor risus eget rhoncus. Etiam non massa sed arcu porttitor suscipit. Nullam lacinia libero sit amet sem ultricies cursus. Interdum et malesuada fames ac ante ipsum primis in faucibus. Praesent eget enim sapien. Proin tempor semper mauris, ac maximus tellus mollis ac. Nullam eget mattis lorem, eget malesuada arcu.

      Donec dolor risus, egestas vitae purus at, suscipit consequat lacus. Etiam sed odio vitae nisi sodales finibus sit amet ac magna. Suspendisse suscipit fringilla turpis sit amet iaculis. Aliquam porttitor et justo in volutpat. Vestibulum ante ipsum primis in faucibus orci luctus et ultrices posuere cubilia Curae; Aliquam vestibulum lorem libero, non accumsan urna lobortis sit amet. Donec eu tristique odio.

      • (Score: 2) by martyb on Saturday December 03 2016, @11:52PM (5 children)

        by martyb (76) on Saturday December 03 2016, @11:52PM (#28923) Journal

        The Project Gutenberg EBook of The War of the Worlds, by H. G. Wells

        This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
        almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
        re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
        with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.net

        Title: The War of the Worlds

        Author: H. G. Wells

        Release Date: July, 1992 [EBook #36]
        [Most recently updated October 1, 2004]

        Language: English

        Character set encoding: ASCII

        *** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE WAR OF THE WORLDS ***

        The War of the Worlds

        by H. G. Wells [1898]

                  But who shall dwell in these worlds if they be
                  inhabited? . . . Are we or they Lords of the
                  World? . . . And how are all things made for man?--
                            KEPLER (quoted in The Anatomy of Melancholy)

        BOOK ONE

        THE COMING OF THE MARTIANS

        CHAPTER ONE

        THE EVE OF THE WAR

        No one would have believed in the last years of the nineteenth
        century that this world was being watched keenly and closely by
        intelligences greater than man's and yet as mortal as his own; that as
        men busied themselves about their various concerns they were
        scrutinised and studied, perhaps almost as narrowly as a man with a
        microscope might scrutinise the transient creatures that swarm and
        multiply in a drop of water. With infinite complacency men went to
        and fro over this globe about their little affairs, serene in their
        assurance of their empire over matter. It is possible that the
        infusoria under the microscope do the same. No one gave a thought to
        the older worlds of space as sources of human danger, or thought of
        them only to dismiss the idea of life upon them as impossible or
        improbable. It is curious to recall some of the mental habits of
        those departed days. At most terrestrial men fancied there might be
        other men upon Mars, perhaps inferior to themselves and ready to
        welcome a missionary enterprise. Yet across the gulf of space, minds
        that are to our minds as ours are to those of the beasts that perish,
        intellects vast and cool and unsympathetic, regarded this earth with
        envious eyes, and slowly and surely drew their plans against us. And
        early in the twentieth century came the great disillusionment.

        The planet Mars, I scarcely need remind the reader, revolves about the
        sun at a mean distance of 140,000,000 miles, and the light and heat it
        receives from the sun is barely half of that received by this world.
        It must be, if the nebular hypothesis has any truth, older than our
        world; and long before this earth ceased to be molten, life upon its
        surface must have begun its course. The fact that it is scarcely one
        seventh of the volume of the earth must have accelerated its cooling
        to the temperature at which life could begin. It has air and water
        and all that is necessary for the support of animated existence.

        Yet so vain is man, and so blinded by his vanity, that no writer,
        up to the very end of the nineteenth century, expressed any idea that
        intelligent life might have developed there far, or indeed at all,
        beyond its earthly level. Nor was it generally understood that since
        Mars is older than our earth, with scarcely a quarter of the
        superficial area and remoter from the sun, it necessarily follows that
        it is not only more distant from time's beginning but nearer its end.

        The secular cooling that must someday overtake our planet has
        already gone far indeed with our neighbour. Its physical condition is
        still largely a mystery, but we know now that even in its equatorial
        region the midday temperature barely approaches that of our coldest
        winter. Its air is much more attenuated than ours, its oceans have
        shrunk until they cover but a third of its surface, and as its slow
        seasons change huge snowcaps gather and melt about either pole and
        periodically inundate its temperate zones. That last stage of
        exhaustion, which to us is still incredibly remote, has become a
        present-day problem for the inhabitants of Mars. The immediate
        pressure of necessity has brightened their intellects, enlarged their
        powers, and hardened their hearts. And looking across space with
        instruments, and intelligences such as we have scarcely dreamed of,
        they see, at its nearest distance only 35,000,000 of miles sunward of
        them, a morning star of hope, our own warmer planet, green with
        vegetation and grey with water, with a cloudy atmosphere eloquent of
        fertility, with glimpses through its drifting cloud wisps of broad
        stretches of populous country and narrow, navy-crowded seas.

        And we men, the creatures who inhabit this earth, must be to them
        at least as alien and lowly as are the monkeys and lemurs to us. The
        intellectual side of man already admits that life is an incessant
        struggle for existence, and it would seem that this too is the belief
        of the minds upon Mars. Their world is far gone in its cooling and
        this world is still crowded with life, but crowded only with what they
        regard as inferior animals. To carry warfare sunward is, indeed,
        their only escape from the destruction that, generation after
        generation, creeps upon them.

        And before we judge of them too harshly we must remember what
        ruthless and utter destruction our own species has wrought, not only
        upon animals, such as the vanished bison and the dodo, but upon its
        inferior races. The Tasmanians, in spite of their human likeness,
        were entirely swept out of existence in a war of extermination waged
        by European immigrants, in the space of fifty years. Are we such
        apostles of mercy as to complain if the Martians warred in the same
        spirit?

        The Martians seem to have calculated their descent with amazing
        subtlety--their mathematical learning is evidently far in excess of
        ours--and to have carried out their preparations with a well-nigh
        perfect unanimity. Had our instruments permitted it, we might have
        seen the gathering trouble far back in the nineteenth century. Men
        like Schiaparelli watched the red planet--it is odd, by-the-bye, that
        for countless centuries Mars has been the star of war--but failed to
        interpret the fluctuating appearances of the markings they mapped so
        well. All that time the Martians must have been getting ready.

        During the opposition of 1894 a great light was seen on the
        illuminated part of the disk, first at the Lick Observatory, then by
        Perrotin of Nice, and then by other observers. English readers heard
        of it first in the issue of _Nature_ dated August 2. I am inclined to
        think that this blaze may have been the casting of the huge gun, in
        the vast pit sunk into their planet, from which their shots were fired
        at us. Peculiar markings, as yet unexplained, were seen near the site
        of that outbreak during the next two oppositions.

        The storm burst upon us six years ago now. As Mars approached
        opposition, Lavelle of Java set the wires of the astronomical exchange
        palpitating with the amazing intelligence of a huge outbreak of
        incandescent gas upon the planet. It had occurred towards midnight of
        the twelfth; and the spectroscope, to which he had at once resorted,
        indicated a mass of flaming gas, chiefly hydrogen, moving with an
        enormous velocity towards this earth. This jet of fire had become
        invisible about a quarter past twelve. He compared it to a colossal
        puff of flame suddenly and violently squirted out of the planet, "as
        flaming gases rushed out of a gun."

        A singularly appropriate phrase it proved. Yet the next day there
        was nothing of this in the papers except a little note in the _Daily
        Telegraph_, and the world went in ignorance of one of the gravest
        dangers that ever threatened the human race. I might not have heard of
        the eruption at all had I not met Ogilvy, the well-known astronomer,
        at Ottershaw. He was immensely excited at the news, and in the excess
        of his feelings invited me up to take a turn with him that night in a
        scrutiny of the red planet.

        In spite of all that has happened since, I still remember that
        vigil very distinctly: the black and silent observatory, the shadowed
        lantern throwing a feeble glow upon the floor in the corner, the
        steady ticking of the clockwork of the telescope, the little slit in
        the roof--an oblong profundity with the stardust streaked across it.
        Ogilvy moved about, invisible but audible. Looking through the
        telescope, one saw a circle of deep blue and the little round planet
        swimming in the field. It seemed such a little thing, so bright and
        small and still, faintly marked with transverse stripes, and slightly
        flattened from the perfect round. But so little it was, so silvery
        warm--a pin's-head of light! It was as if it quivered, but really this
        was the telescope vibrating with the activity of the clockwork that
        kept the planet in view.

        As I watched, the planet seemed to grow larger and smaller and to
        advance and recede, but that was simply that my eye was tired. Forty
        millions of miles it was from us--more than forty millions of miles of
        void. Few people realise the immensity of vacancy in which the dust
        of the material universe swims.

        Near it in the field, I remember, were three faint points of light,
        three telescopic stars infinitely remote, and all around it was the
        unfathomable darkness of empty space. You know how that blackness
        looks on a frosty starlight night. In a telescope it seems far
        profounder. And invisible to me because it was so remote and small,
        flying swiftly and steadily towards me across that incredible
        distance, drawing nearer every minute by so many thousands of miles,
        came the Thing they were sending us, the Thing that was to bring so
        much struggle and calamity and death to the earth. I never dreamed of
        it then as I watched; no one on earth dreamed of that unerring
        missile.

        That night, too, there was another jetting out of gas from the
        distant planet. I saw it. A reddish flash at the edge, the slightest
        projection of the outline just as the chronometer struck midnight; and
        at that I told Ogilvy and he took my place. The night was warm and I
        was thirsty, and I went stretching my legs clumsily and feeling my way
        in the darkness, to the little table where the siphon stood, while
        Ogilvy exclaimed at the streamer of gas that came out towards us.

        That night another invisible missile started on its way to the
        earth from Mars, just a second or so under twenty-four hours after the
        first one. I remember how I sat on the table there in the blackness,
        with patches of green and crimson swimming before my eyes. I wished I
        had a light to smoke by, little suspecting the meaning of the minute
        gleam I had seen and all that it would presently bring me. Ogilvy
        watched till one, and then gave it up; and we lit the lantern and
        walked over to his house. Down below in the darkness were Ottershaw
        and Chertsey and all their hundreds of people, sleeping in peace.

        He was full of speculation that night about the condition of Mars,
        and scoffed at the vulgar idea of its having inhabitants who were
        signalling us. His idea was that meteorites might be falling in a
        heavy shower upon the planet, or that a huge volcanic explosion was in
        progress. He pointed out to me how unlikely it was that organic
        evolution had taken the same direction in the two adjacent planets.

        "The chances against anything manlike on Mars are a million to
        one," he said.

        Hundreds of observers saw the flame that night and the night after
        about midnight, and again the night after; and so for ten nights, a
        flame each night. Why the shots ceased after the tenth no one on
        earth has attempted to explain. It may be the gases of the firing
        caused the Martians inconvenience. Dense clouds of smoke or dust,
        visible through a powerful telescope on earth as little grey,
        fluctuating patches, spread through the clearness of the planet's
        atmosphere and obscured its more familiar features.

        Even the daily papers woke up to the disturbances at last, and
        popular notes appeared here, there, and everywhere concerning the
        volcanoes upon Mars. The seriocomic periodical _Punch_, I remember,
        made a happy use of it in the political cartoon. And, all
        unsuspected, those missiles the Martians had fired at us drew
        earthward, rushing now at a pace of many miles a second through the
        empty gulf of space, hour by hour and day by day, nearer and nearer.
        It seems to me now almost incredibly wonderful that, with that swift
        fate hanging over us, men could go about their petty concerns as they
        did. I remember how jubilant Markham was at securing a new photograph
        of the planet for the illustrated paper he edited in those days.
        People in these latter times scarcely realise the abundance and
        enterprise of our nineteenth-century papers. For my own part, I was
        much occupied in learning to ride the bicycle, and busy upon a series
        of papers discussing the probable developments of moral ideas as
        civilisation progressed.

        One night (the first missile then could scarcely have been
        10,000,000 miles away) I went for a walk with my wife. It was
        starlight and I explained the Signs of the Zodiac to her, and pointed
        out Mars, a bright dot of light creeping zenithward, towards which so
        many telescopes were pointed. It was a warm night. Coming home, a
        party of excursionists from Chertsey or Isleworth passed us singing
        and playing music. There were lights in the upper windows of the
        houses as the people went to bed. From the railway station in the
        distance came the sound of shunting trains, ringing and rumbling,
        softened almost into melody by the distance. My wife pointed out to
        me the brightness of the red, green, and yellow signal lights hanging
        in a framework against the sky. It seemed so safe and tranquil.

        CHAPTER TWO

        THE FALLING STAR

        Then came the night of the first falling star. It was seen early
        in the morning, rushing over Winchester eastward, a line of flame high
        in the atmosphere. Hundreds must have seen it, and taken it for an
        ordinary falling star. Albin described it as leaving a greenish
        streak behind it that glowed for some seconds. Denning, our greatest
        authority on meteorites, stated that the height of its first
        appearance was about ninety or one hundred miles. It seemed to him
        that it fell to earth about one hundred miles east of him.

        I was at home at that hour and writing in my study; and although my
        French windows face towards Ottershaw and the blind was up (for I
        loved in those days to look up at the night sky), I saw nothing of it.
        Yet this strangest of all things that ever came to earth from outer
        space must have fallen while I was sitting there, visible to me had I
        only looked up as it passed. Some of those who saw its flight say it
        travelled with a hissing sound. I myself heard nothing of that. Many
        people in Berkshire, Surrey, and Middlesex must have seen the fall of
        it, and, at most, have thought that another meteorite had descended.
        No one seems to have troubled to look for the fallen mass that night.

        But very early in the morning poor Ogilvy, who had seen the
        shooting star and who was persuaded that a meteorite lay somewhere on
        the common between Horsell, Ottershaw, and Woking, rose early with the
        idea of finding it. Find it he did, soon after dawn, and not far from
        the sand pits. An enormous hole had been made by the impact of the
        projectile, and the sand and gravel had been flung violently in every
        direction over the heath, forming heaps visible a mile and a half
        away. The heather was on fire eastward, and a thin blue smoke rose
        against the dawn.

        The Thing itself lay almost entirely buried in sand, amidst the
        scattered splinters of a fir tree it had shivered to fragments in its
        descent. The uncovered part had the appearance of a huge cylinder,
        caked over and its outline softened by a thick scaly dun-coloured
        incrustation. It had a diameter of about thirty yards. He approached
        the mass, surprised at the size and more so at the shape, since most
        meteorites are rounded more or less completely. It was, however,
        still so hot from its flight through the air as to forbid his near
        approach. A stirring noise within its cylinder he ascribed to the
        unequal cooling of its surface; for at that time it had not occurred
        to him that it might be hollow.

        He remained standing at the edge of the pit that the Thing had made
        for itself, staring at its strange appearance, astonished chiefly at
        its unusual shape and colour, and dimly perceiving even then some
        evidence of design in its arrival. The early morning was wonderfully
        still, and the sun, just clearing the pine trees towards Weybridge,
        was already warm. He did not remember hearing any birds that morning,
        there was certainly no breeze stirring, and the only sounds were the
        faint movements from within the cindery cylinder. He was all alone on
        the common.

        Then suddenly he noticed with a start that some of the grey
        clinker, the ashy incrustation that covered the meteorite, was falling
        off the circular edge of the end. It was dropping off in flakes and
        raining down upon the sand. A large piece suddenly came off and fell
        with a sharp noise that brought his heart into his mouth.

        For a minute he scarcely realised what this meant, and, although
        the heat was excessive, he clambered down into the pit close to the
        bulk to see the Thing more clearly. He fancied even then that the
        cooling of the body might account for this, but what disturbed that
        idea was the fact that the ash was falling only from the end of the
        cylinder.

        And then he perceived that, very slowly, the circular top of the
        cylinder was rotating on its body. It was such a gradual movement
        that he discovered it only through noticing that a black mark that had
        been near him five minutes ago was now at the other side of the
        circumference. Even then he scarcely understood what this indicated,
        until he heard a muffled grating sound and saw the black mark jerk
        forward an inch or so. Then the thing came upon him in a flash. The
        cylinder was artificial--hollow--with an end that screwed out!
        Something within the cylinder was unscrewing the top!

        "Good heavens!" said Ogilvy. "There's a man in it--men in it! Half
        roasted to death! Trying to escape!"

        At once, with a quick mental leap, he linked the Thing with the
        flash upon Mars.

        The thought of the confined creature was so dreadful to him that he
        forgot the heat and went forward to the cylinder to help turn. But
        luckily the dull radiation arrested him before he could burn his hands
        on the still-glowing metal. At that he stood irresolute for a moment,
        then turned, scrambled out of the pit, and set off running wildly into
        Woking. The time then must have been somewhere about six o'clock.
        He met a waggoner and tried to make him understand, but the tale he
        told and his appearance were so wild--his hat had fallen off in the
        pit--that the man simply drove on. He was equally unsuccessful with the
        potman who was just unlocking the doors of the public-house by Horsell
        Bridge. The fellow thought he was a lunatic at large and made an
        unsuccessful attempt to shut him into the taproom. That sobered him a
        little; and when he saw Henderson, the London journalist, in his
        garden, he called over the palings and made himself understood.

        "Henderson," he called, "you saw that shooting star last night?"

        "Well?" said Henderson.

        "It's out on Horsell Common now."

        "Good Lord!" said Henderson. "Fallen meteorite! That's good."

        "But it's something more than a meteorite. It's a cylinder--an
        artificial cylinder, man! And there's something inside."

        Henderson stood up with his spade in his hand.

        "What's that?" he said. He was deaf in one ear.

        Ogilvy told him all that he had seen. Henderson was a minute or so
        taking it in. Then he dropped his spade, snatched up his jacket, and
        came out into the road. The two men hurried back at once to the
        common, and found the cylinder still lying in the same position. But
        now the sounds inside had ceased, and a thin circle of bright metal
        showed between the top and the body of the cylinder. Air was either
        entering or escaping at the rim with a thin, sizzling sound.

        They listened, rapped on the scaly burnt metal with a stick, and,
        meeting with no response, they both concluded the man or men inside
        must be insensible or dead.

        Of course the two were quite unable to do anything. They shouted
        consolation and promises, and went off back to the town again to get
        help. One can imagine them, covered with sand, excited and
        disordered, running up the little street in the bright sunlight just
        as the shop folks were taking down their shutters and people were
        opening their bedroom windows. Henderson went into the railway
        station at once, in order to telegraph the news to London. The
        newspaper articles had prepared men's minds for the reception of the
        idea.

        By eight o'clock a number of boys and unemployed men had already
        started for the common to see the "dead men from Mars." That was the
        form the story took. I heard of it first from my newspaper boy about
        a quarter to nine when I went out to get my _Daily Chronicle_. I was
        naturally startled, and lost no time in going out and across the
        Ottershaw bridge to the sand pits.

        CHAPTER THREE

        ON HORSELL COMMON

        I found a little crowd of perhaps twenty people surrounding the
        huge hole in which the cylinder lay. I have already described the
        appearance of that colossal bulk, embedded in the ground. The turf
        and gravel about it seemed charred as if by a sudden explosion. No
        doubt its impact had caused a flash of fire. Henderson and Ogilvy
        were not there. I think they perceived that nothing was to be done
        for the present, and had gone away to breakfast at Henderson's house.

        There were four or five boys sitting on the edge of the Pit, with
        their feet dangling, and amusing themselves--until I stopped them--by
        throwing stones at the giant mass. After I had spoken to them about
        it, they began playing at "touch" in and out of the group of
        bystanders.

        Among these were a couple of cyclists, a jobbing gardener I
        employed sometimes, a girl carrying a baby, Gregg the butcher and his
        little boy, and two or three loafers and golf caddies who were
        accustomed to hang about the railway station. There was very little
        talking. Few of the common people in England had anything but the
        vaguest astronomical ideas in those days. Most of them were staring
        quietly at the big table like end of the cylinder, which was still as
        Ogilvy and Henderson had left it. I fancy the popular expectation of
        a heap of charred corpses was disappointed at this inanimate bulk.
        Some went away while I was there, and other people came. I clambered
        into the pit and fancied I heard a faint movement under my feet. The
        top had certainly ceased to rotate.

        It was only when I got thus close to it that the strangeness of
        this object was at all evident to me. At the first glance it was
        really no more exciting than an overturned carriage or a tree blown
        across the road. Not so much so, indeed. It looked like a rusty gas
        float. It required a certain amount of scientific education to
        perceive that the grey scale of the Thing was no common oxide, that
        the yellowish-white metal that gleamed in the crack between the lid
        and the cylinder had an unfamiliar hue. "Extra-terrestrial" had no
        meaning for most of the onlookers.

        At that time it was quite clear in my own mind that the Thing had
        come from the planet Mars, but I judged it improbable that it
        contained any living creature. I thought the unscrewing might be
        automatic. In spite of Ogilvy, I still believed that there were men
        in Mars. My mind ran fancifully on the possibilities of its
        containing manuscript, on the difficulties in translation that might
        arise, whether we should find coins and models in it, and so forth.
        Yet it was a little too large for assurance on this idea. I felt an
        impatience to see it opened. About eleven, as nothing seemed
        happening, I walked back, full of such thought, to my home in Maybury.
        But I found it difficult to get to work upon my abstract
        investigations.

        In the afternoon the appearance of the common had altered very
        much. The early editions of the evening papers had startled London
        with enormous headlines:

            "A MESSAGE RECEIVED FROM MARS."

            "REMARKABLE STORY FROM WOKING,"

        and so forth. In addition, Ogilvy's wire to the Astronomical Exchange
        had roused every observatory in the three kingdoms.

        There were half a dozen flies or more from the Woking station
        standing in the road by the sand pits, a basket-chaise from Chobham,
        and a rather lordly carriage. Besides that, there was quite a heap of
        bicycles. In addition, a large number of people must have walked, in
        spite of the heat of the day, from Woking and Chertsey, so that there
        was altogether quite a considerable crowd--one or two gaily dressed
        ladies among the others.

        It was glaringly hot, not a cloud in the sky nor a breath of wind,
        and the only shadow was that of the few scattered pine trees. The
        burning heather had been extinguished, but the level ground towards
        Ottershaw was blackened as far as one could see, and still giving off
        vertical streamers of smoke. An enterprising sweet-stuff dealer in
        the Chobham Road had sent up his son with a barrow-load of green
        apples and ginger beer.

        Going to the edge of the pit, I found it occupied by a group of
        about half a dozen men--Henderson, Ogilvy, and a tall, fair-haired man
        that I afterwards learned was Stent, the Astronomer Royal, with
        several workmen wielding spades and pickaxes. Stent was giving
        directions in a clear, high-pitched voice. He was standing on the
        cylinder, which was now evidently much cooler; his face was crimson
        and streaming with perspiration, and something seemed to have
        irritated him.

        A large portion of the cylinder had been uncovered, though its
        lower end was still embedded. As soon as Ogilvy saw me among the
        staring crowd on the edge of the pit he called to me to come down, and
        asked me if I would mind going over to see Lord Hilton, the lord of
        the manor.

        The growing crowd, he said, was becoming a serious impediment to
        their excavations, especially the boys. They wanted a light railing
        put up, and help to keep the people back. He told me that a faint
        stirring was occasionally still audible within the case, but that the
        workmen had failed to unscrew the top, as it afforded no grip to them.
        The case appeared to be enormously thick, and it was possible that the
        faint sounds we heard represented a noisy tumult in the interior.

        I was very glad to do as he asked, and so become one of the
        privileged spectators within the contemplated enclosure. I failed to
        find Lord Hilton at his house, but I was told he was expected from
        London by the six o'clock train from Waterloo; and as it was then
        about a quarter past five, I went home, had some tea, and walked up to
        the station to waylay him.

        CHAPTER FOUR

        THE CYLINDER OPENS

        When I returned to the common the sun was setting. Scattered groups
        were hurrying from the direction of Woking, and one or two persons
        were returning. The crowd about the pit had increased, and stood out
        black against the lemon yellow of the sky--a couple of hundred people,
        perhaps. There were raised voices, and some sort of struggle appeared
        to be going on about the pit. Strange imaginings passed through my
        mind. As I drew nearer I heard Stent's voice:

        "Keep back! Keep back!"

        A boy came running towards me.

        "It's a-movin'," he said to me as he passed; "a-screwin' and
        a-screwin' out. I don't like it. I'm a-goin' 'ome, I am."

        I went on to the crowd. There were really, I should think, two or
        three hundred people elbowing and jostling one another, the one or two
        ladies there being by no means the least active.

        "He's fallen in the pit!" cried some one.

        "Keep back!" said several.

        The crowd swayed a little, and I elbowed my way through. Every one
        seemed greatly excited. I heard a peculiar humming sound from the
        pit.

        "I say!" said Ogilvy; "help keep these idiots back. We don't know
        what's in the confounded thing, you know!"

        I saw a young man, a shop assistant in Woking I believe he was,
        standing on the cylinder and trying to scramble out of the hole again.
        The crowd had pushed him in.

        The end of the cylinder was being screwed out from within. Nearly
        two feet of shining screw projected. Somebody blundered against me,
        and I narrowly missed being pitched onto the top of the screw. I
        turned, and as I did so the screw must have come out, for the lid of
        the cylinder fell upon the gravel with a ringing concussion. I stuck
        my elbow into the person behind me, and turned my head towards the
        Thing again. For a moment that circular cavity seemed perfectly black.
        I had the sunset in my eyes.

        I think everyone expected to see a man emerge--possibly something a
        little unlike us terrestrial men, but in all essentials a man. I know
        I did. But, looking, I presently saw something stirring within the
        shadow: greyish billowy movements, one above another, and then two
        luminous disks--like eyes. Then something resembling a little grey
        snake, about the thickness of a walking stick, coiled up out of the
        writhing middle, and wriggled in the air towards me--and then another.

        A sudden chill came over me. There was a loud shriek from a woman
        behind. I half turned, keeping my eyes fixed upon the cylinder still,
        from which other tentacles were now projecting, and began pushing my
        way back from the edge of the pit. I saw astonishment giving place to
        horror on the faces of the people about me. I heard inarticulate
        exclamations on all sides. There was a general movement backwards.
        I saw the shopman struggling still on the edge of the pit. I found
        myself alone, and saw the people on the other side of the pit running
        off, Stent among them. I looked again at the cylinder, and
        ungovernable terror gripped me. I stood petrified and staring.

        A big greyish rounded bulk, the size, perhaps, of a bear, was
        rising slowly and painfully out of the cylinder. As it bulged up and
        caught the light, it glistened like wet leather.

        Two large dark-coloured eyes were regarding me steadfastly. The
        mass that framed them, the head of the thing, was rounded, and had,
        one might say, a face. There was a mouth under the eyes, the lipless
        brim of which quivered and panted, and dropped saliva. The whole
        creature heaved and pulsated convulsively. A lank tentacular
        appendage gripped the edge of the cylinder, another swayed in the air.

        Those who have never seen a living Martian can scarcely imagine the
        strange horror of its appearance. The peculiar V-shaped mouth with
        its pointed upper lip, the absence of brow ridges, the absence of a
        chin beneath the wedgelike lower lip, the incessant quivering of this
        mouth, the Gorgon groups of tentacles, the tumultuous breathing of the
        lungs in a strange atmosphere, the evident heaviness and painfulness
        of movement due to the greater gravitational energy of the earth--above
        all, the extraordinary intensity of the immense eyes--were at
        once vital, intense, inhuman, crippled and monstrous. There was
        something fungoid in the oily brown skin, something in the clumsy
        deliberation of the tedious movements unspeakably nasty. Even at this
        first encounter, this first glimpse, I was overcome with disgust and
        dread.

        Suddenly the monster vanished. It had toppled over the brim of the
        cylinder and fallen into the pit, with a thud like the fall of a great
        mass of leather. I heard it give a peculiar thick cry, and forthwith
        another of these creatures appeared darkly in the deep shadow of the
        aperture.

        I turned and, running madly, made for the first group of trees,
        perhaps a hundred yards away; but I ran slantingly and stumbling, for
        I could not avert my face from these things.

        There, among some young pine trees and furze bushes, I stopped,
        panting, and waited further developments. The common round the sand
        pits was dotted with people, standing like myself in a half-fascinated
        terror, staring at these creatures, or rather at the heaped gravel at
        the edge of the pit in which they lay. And then, with a renewed
        horror, I saw a round, black object bobbing up and down on the edge of
        the pit. It was the head of the shopman who had fallen in, but
        showing as a little black object against the hot western sun. Now he
        got his shoulder and knee up, and again he seemed to slip back until
        only his head was visible. Suddenly he vanished, and I could have
        fancied a faint shriek had reached me. I had a momentary impulse to
        go back and help him that my fears overruled.

        Everything was then quite invisible, hidden by the deep pit and the
        heap of sand that the fall of the cylinder had made. Anyone coming
        along the road from Chobham or Woking would have been amazed at the
        sight--a dwindling multitude of perhaps a hundred people or more
        standing in a great irregular circle, in ditches, behind bushes,
        behind gates and hedges, saying little to one another and that in
        short, excited shouts, and staring, staring hard at a few heaps of
        sand. The barrow of ginger beer stood, a queer derelict, black
        against the burning sky, and in the sand pits was a row of deserted
        vehicles with their horses feeding out of nosebags or pawing the
        ground.

        CHAPTER FIVE

        THE HEAT-RAY

        After the glimpse I had had of the Martians emerging from the
        cylinder in which they had come to the earth from their planet, a kind
        of fascination paralysed my actions. I remained standing knee-deep in
        the heather, staring at the mound that hid them. I was a battleground
        of fear and curiosity.

        I did not dare to go back towards the pit, but I felt a passionate
        longing to peer into it. I began walking, therefore, in a big curve,
        seeking some point of vantage and continually looking at the sand
        heaps that hid these new-comers to our earth. Once a leash of thin
        black whips, like the arms of an octopus, flashed across the sunset
        and was immediately withdrawn, and afterwards a thin rod rose up,
        joint by joint, bearing at its apex a circular disk that spun with a
        wobbling motion. What could be going on there?

        Most of the spectators had gathered in one or two groups--one a
        little crowd towards Woking, the other a knot of people in the
        direction of Chobham. Evidently they shared my mental conflict.
        There were few near me. One man I approached--he was, I perceived,
        a neighbour of mine, though I did not know his name--and accosted.
        But it was scarcely a time for articulate conversation.

        "What ugly _brutes_!" he said. "Good God! What ugly brutes!" He
        repeated this over and over again.

        "Did you see a man in the pit?" I said; but he made no answer to
        that. We became silent, and stood watching for a time side by side,
        deriving, I fancy, a certain comfort in one another's company. Then I
        shifted my position to a little knoll that gave me the advantage of a
        yard or more of elevation and when I looked for him presently he was
        walking towards Woking.

        The sunset faded to twilight before anything further happened. The
        crowd far away on the left, towards Woking, seemed to grow, and I
        heard now a faint murmur from it. The little knot of people towards
        Chobham dispersed. There was scarcely an intimation of movement from
        the pit.

        It was this, as much as anything, that gave people courage, and I
        suppose the new arrivals from Woking also helped to restore
        confidence. At any rate, as the dusk came on a slow, intermittent
        movement upon the sand pits began, a movement that seemed to gather
        force as the stillness of the evening about the cylinder remained
        unbroken. Vertical black figures in twos and threes would advance,
        stop, watch, and advance again, spreading out as they did so in a thin
        irregular crescent that promised to enclose the pit in its attenuated
        horns. I, too, on my side began to move towards the pit.

        Then I saw some cabmen and others had walked boldly into the sand
        pits, and heard the clatter of hoofs and the gride of wheels. I saw a
        lad trundling off the barrow of apples. And then, within thirty yards
        of the pit, advancing from the direction of Horsell, I noted a little
        black knot of men, the foremost of whom was waving a white flag.

        This was the Deputation. There had been a hasty consultation, and
        since the Martians were evidently, in spite of their repulsive forms,
        intelligent creatures, it had been resolved to show them, by
        approaching them with signals, that we too were intelligent.

        Flutter, flutter, went the flag, first to the right, then to the
        left. It was too far for me to recognise anyone there, but afterwards
        I learned that Ogilvy, Stent, and Henderson were with others in this
        attempt at communication. This little group had in its advance
        dragged inward, so to speak, the circumference of the now almost
        complete circle of people, and a number of dim black figures followed
        it at discreet distances.

        Suddenly there was a flash of light, and a quantity of luminous
        greenish smoke came out of the pit in three distinct puffs, which
        drove up, one after the other, straight into the still air.

        This smoke (or flame, perhaps, would be the better word for it) was
        so bright that the deep blue sky overhead and the hazy stretches of
        brown common towards Chertsey, set with black pine trees, seemed to
        darken abruptly as these puffs arose, and to remain the darker after
        their dispersal. At the same time a faint hissing sound became
        audible.

        Beyond the pit stood the little wedge of people with the white flag
        at its apex, arrested by these phenomena, a little knot of small
        vertical black shapes upon the black ground. As the green smoke arose,
        their faces flashed out pallid green, and faded again as it vanished.
        Then slowly the hissing passed into a humming, into a long, loud,
        droning noise. Slowly a humped shape rose out of the pit, and the
        ghost of a beam of light seemed to flicker out from it.

        Forthwith flashes of actual flame, a bright glare leaping from one
        to another, sprang from the scattered group of men. It was as if some
        invisible jet impinged upon them and flashed into white flame. It was
        as if each man were suddenly and momentarily turned to fire.

        Then, by the light of their own destruction, I saw them staggering
        and falling, and their supporters turning to run.

        I stood staring, not as yet realising that this was death leaping
        from man to man in that little distant crowd. All I felt was that it
        was something very strange. An almost noiseless and blinding flash of
        light, and a man fell headlong and lay still; and as the unseen shaft
        of heat passed over them, pine trees burst into fire, and every dry
        furze bush became with one dull thud a mass of flames. And far away
        towards Knaphill I saw the flashes of trees and hedges and wooden
        buildings suddenly set alight.

        It was sweeping round swiftly and steadily, this flaming death,
        this invisible, inevitable sword of heat. I perceived it coming
        towards me by the flashing bushes it touched, and was too astounded
        and stupefied to stir. I heard the crackle of fire in the sand pits
        and the sudden squeal of a horse that was as suddenly stilled. Then
        it was as if an invisible yet intensely heated finger were drawn
        through the heather between me and the Martians, and all along a
        curving line beyond the sand pits the dark ground smoked and crackled.
        Something fell with a crash far away to the left where the road from
        Woking station opens out on the common. Forth-with the hissing and
        humming ceased, and the black, dome-like object sank slowly out of
        sight into the pit.

        All this had happened with such swiftness that I had stood
        motionless, dumbfounded and dazzled by the flashes of light. Had that
        death swept through a full circle, it must inevitably have slain me in
        my surprise. But it passed and spared me, and left the night about me
        suddenly dark and unfamiliar.

        The undulating common seemed now dark almost to blackness, except
        where its roadways lay grey and pale under the deep blue sky of the
        early night. It was dark, and suddenly void of men. Overhead the
        stars were mustering, and in the west the sky was still a pale,
        bright, almost greenish blue. The tops of the pine trees and the
        roofs of Horsell came out sharp and black against the western
        afterglow. The Martians and their appliances were altogether
        invisible, save for that thin mast upon which their restless mirror
        wobbled. Patches of bush and isolated trees here and there smoked and
        glowed still, and the houses towards Woking station were sending up
        spires of flame into the stillness of the evening air.

        Nothing was changed save for that and a terrible astonishment. The
        little group of black specks with the flag of white had been swept out
        of existence, and the stillness of the evening, so it seemed to me,
        had scarcely been broken.

        It came to me that I was upon this dark common, helpless,
        unprotected, and alone. Suddenly, like a thing falling upon me from
        without, came--fear.

        With an effort I turned and began a stumbling run through the
        heather.

        The fear I felt was no rational fear, but a panic terror not only
        of the Martians, but of the dusk and stillness all about me. Such an
        extraordinary effect in unmanning me it had that I ran weeping
        silently as a child might do. Once I had turned, I did not dare to
        look back.

        I remember I felt an extraordinary persuasion that I was being
        played with, that presently, when I was upon the very verge of safety,
        this mysterious death--as swift as the passage of light--would leap
        after me from the pit about the cylinder and strike me down.

        CHAPTER SIX

        THE HEAT-RAY IN THE CHOBHAM ROAD

        It is still a matter of wonder how the Martians are able to slay
        men so swiftly and so silently. Many think that in some way they are
        able to generate an intense heat in a chamber of practically absolute
        non-conductivity. This intense heat they project in a parallel beam
        against any object they choose, by means of a polished parabolic
        mirror of unknown composition, much as the parabolic mirror of a
        lighthouse projects a beam of light. But no one has absolutely proved
        these details. However it is done, it is certain that a beam of heat
        is the essence of the matter. Heat, and invisible, instead of
        visible, light. Whatever is combustible flashes into flame at its
        touch, lead runs like water, it softens iron, cracks and melts glass,
        and when it falls upon water, incontinently that explodes into steam.

        That night nearly forty people lay under the starlight about the
        pit, charred and distorted beyond recognition, and all night long the
        common from Horsell to Maybury was deserted and brightly ablaze.

        The news of the massacre probably reached Chobham, Woking, and
        Ottershaw about the same time. In Woking the shops had closed when
        the tragedy happened, and a number of people, shop people and so
        forth, attracted by the stories they had heard, were walking over the
        Horsell Bridge and along the road between the hedges that runs out at
        last upon the common. You may imagine the young people brushed up
        after the labours of the day, and making this novelty, as they would
        make any novelty, the excuse for walking together and enjoying a
        trivial flirtation. You may figure to yourself the hum of voices
        along the road in the gloaming. . . .

        As yet, of course, few people in Woking even knew that the cylinder
        had opened, though poor Henderson had sent a messenger on a bicycle to
        the post office with a special wire to an evening paper.

        As these folks came out by twos and threes upon the open, they
        found little knots of people talking excitedly and peering at the
        spinning mirror over the sand pits, and the newcomers were, no doubt,
        soon infected by the excitement of the occasion.

        By half past eight, when the Deputation was destroyed, there may
        have been a crowd of three hundred people or more at this place,
        besides those who had left the road to approach the Martians nearer.
        There were three policemen too, one of whom was mounted, doing their
        best, under instructions from Stent, to keep the people back and deter
        them from approaching the cylinder. There was some booing from those
        more thoughtless and excitable souls to whom a crowd is always an
        occasion for noise and horse-play.

        Stent and Ogilvy, anticipating some possibilities of a collision,
        had telegraphed from Horsell to the barracks as soon as the Martians
        emerged, for the help of a company of soldiers to protect these
        strange creatures from violence. After that they returned to lead that
        ill-fated advance. The description of their death, as it was seen by
        the crowd, tallies very closely with my own impressions: the three
        puffs of green smoke, the deep humming note, and the flashes of flame.

        But that crowd of people had a far narrower escape than mine. Only
        the fact that a hummock of heathery sand intercepted the lower part of
        the Heat-Ray saved them. Had the elevation of the parabolic mirror
        been a few yards higher, none could have lived to tell the tale. They
        saw the flashes and the men falling and an invisible hand, as it were,
        lit the bushes as it hurried towards them through the twilight. Then,
        with a whistling note that rose above the droning of the pit, the beam
        swung close over their heads, lighting the tops of the beech trees
        that line the road, and splitting the bricks, smashing the windows,
        firing the window frames, and bringing down in crumbling ruin a
        portion of the gable of the house nearest the corner.

        In the sudden thud, hiss, and glare of the igniting trees, the
        panic-stricken crowd seems to have swayed hesitatingly for some
        moments. Sparks and burning twigs began to fall into the road, and
        single leaves like puffs of flame. Hats and dresses caught fire. Then
        came a crying from the common. There were shrieks and shouts, and
        suddenly a mounted policeman came galloping through the confusion with
        his hands clasped over his head, screaming.

        "They're coming!" a woman shrieked, and incontinently everyone was
        turning and pushing at those behind, in order to clear their way to
        Woking again. They must have bolted as blindly as a flock of sheep.
        Where the road grows narrow and black between the high banks the crowd
        jammed, and a desperate struggle occurred. All that crowd did not
        escape; three persons at least, two women and a little boy, were
        crushed and trampled there, and left to die amid the terror and the
        darkness.

        CHAPTER SEVEN

        HOW I REACHED HOME

        For my own part, I remember nothing of my flight except the stress
        of blundering against trees and stumbling through the heather. All
        about me gathered the invisible terrors of the Martians; that pitiless
        sword of heat seemed whirling to and fro, flourishing overhead before
        it descended and smote me out of life. I came into the road between
        the crossroads and Horsell, and ran along this to the crossroads.

        At last I could go no further; I was exhausted with the violence of
        my emotion and of my flight, and I staggered and fell by the wayside.
        That was near the bridge that crosses the canal by the gasworks. I
        fell and lay still.

        I must have remained there some time.

        I sat up, strangely perplexed. For a moment, perhaps, I could not
        clearly understand how I came there. My terror had fallen from me
        like a garment. My hat had gone, and my collar had burst away from
        its fastener. A few minutes before, there had only been three real
        things before me--the immensity of the night and space and nature, my
        own feebleness and anguish, and the near approach of death. Now it
        was as if something turned over, and the point of view altered
        abruptly. There was no sensible transition from one state of mind to
        the other. I was immediately the self of every day again--a decent,
        ordinary citizen. The silent common, the impulse of my flight, the
        starting flames, were as if they had been in a dream. I asked myself
        had these latter things indeed happened? I could not credit it.

        I rose and walked unsteadily up the steep incline of the bridge. My
        mind was blank wonder. My muscles and nerves seemed drained of their
        strength. I dare say I staggered drunkenly. A head rose over the
        arch, and the figure of a workman carrying a basket appeared. Beside
        him ran a little boy. He passed me, wishing me good night. I was
        minded to speak to him, but did not. I answered his greeting with a
        meaningless mumble and went on over the bridge.

        Over the Maybury arch a train, a billowing tumult of white, firelit
        smoke, and a long caterpillar of lighted windows, went flying
        south--clatter, clatter, clap, rap, and it had gone. A dim group of
        people talked in the gate of one of the houses in the pretty little
        row of gables that was called Oriental Terrace. It was all so real
        and so familiar. And that behind me! It was frantic, fantastic!
        Such things, I told myself, could not be.

        Perhaps I am a man of exceptional moods. I do not know how far my
        experience is common. At times I suffer from the strangest sense of
        detachment from myself and the world about me; I seem to watch it all
        from the outside, from somewhere inconceivably remote, out of time,
        out of space, out of the stress and tragedy of it all. This feeling
        was very strong upon me that night. Here was another side to my
        dream.

        But the trouble was the blank incongruity of this serenity and the
        swift death flying yonder, not two miles away. There was a noise of
        business from the gasworks, and the electric lamps were all alight. I
        stopped at the group of people.

        "What news from the common?" said I.

        There were two men and a woman at the gate.

        "Eh?" said one of the men, turning.

        "What news from the common?" I said.

        "'Ain't yer just _been_ there?" asked the men.

        "People seem fair silly about the common," said the woman over the
        gate. "What's it all abart?"

        "Haven't you heard of the men from Mars?" said I; "the creatures
        from Mars?"

        "Quite enough," said the woman over the gate. "Thenks"; and all
        three of them laughed.

        I felt foolish and angry. I tried and found I could not tell them
        what I had seen. They laughed again at my broken sentences.

        "You'll hear more yet," I said, and went on to my home.

        I startled my wife at the doorway, so haggard was I. I went into
        the dining room, sat down, drank some wine, and so soon as I could
        collect myself sufficiently I told her the things I had seen. The
        dinner, which was a cold one, had already been served, and remained
        neglected on the table while I told my story.

        "There is one thing," I said, to allay the fears I had aroused;
        "they are the most sluggish things I ever saw crawl. They may keep
        the pit and kill people who come near them, but they cannot get out
        of it. . . . But the horror of them!"

        "Don't, dear!" said my wife, knitting her brows and putting her
        hand on mine.

        "Poor Ogilvy!" I said. "To think he may be lying dead there!"

        My wife at least did not find my experience incredible. When I saw
        how deadly white her face was, I ceased abruptly.

        "They may come here," she said again and again.

        I pressed her to take wine, and tried to reassure her.

        "They can scarcely move," I said.

        I began to comfort her and myself by repeating all that Ogilvy had
        told me of the impossibility of the Martians establishing themselves
        on the earth. In particular I laid stress on the gravitational
        difficulty. On the surface of the earth the force of gravity is three
        times what it is on the surface of Mars. A Martian, therefore, would
        weigh three times more than on Mars, albeit his muscular strength
        would be the same. His own body would be a cope of lead to him. That,
        indeed, was the general opinion. Both _The Times_ and the _Daily
        Telegraph_, for instance, insisted on it the next morning, and both
        overlooked, just as I did, two obvious modifying influences.

        The atmosphere of the earth, we now know, contains far more oxygen
        or far less argon (whichever way one likes to put it) than does Mars.
        The invigorating influences of this excess of oxygen upon the Martians
        indisputably did much to counterbalance the increased weight of their
        bodies. And, in the second place, we all overlooked the fact that
        such mechanical intelligence as the Martian possessed was quite able
        to dispense with muscular exertion at a pinch.

        But I did not consider these points at the time, and so my
        reasoning was dead against the chances of the invaders. With wine and
        food, the confidence of my own table, and the necessity of reassuring
        my wife, I grew by insensible degrees courageous and secure.

        "They have done a foolish thing," said I, fingering my wineglass.
        "They are dangerous because, no doubt, they are mad with terror.
        Perhaps they expected to find no living things--certainly no
        intelligent living things."

        "A shell in the pit" said I, "if the worst comes to the worst will
        kill them all."

        The intense excitement of the events had no doubt left my
        perceptive powers in a state of erethism. I remember that dinner
        table with extraordinary vividness even now. My dear wife's sweet
        anxious face peering at me from under the pink lamp shade, the white
        cloth with its silver and glass table furniture--for in those days
        even philosophical writers had many little luxuries--the crimson-purple
        wine in my glass, are photographically distinct. At the end of
        it I sat, tempering nuts with a cigarette, regretting Ogilvy's
        rashness, and denouncing the shortsighted timidity of the Martians.

        So some respectable dodo in the Mauritius might have lorded it in
        his nest, and discussed the arrival of that shipful of pitiless
        sailors in want of animal food. "We will peck them to death tomorrow,
        my dear."

        I did not know it, but that was the last civilised dinner I was to
        eat for very many strange and terrible days.

        CHAPTER EIGHT

        FRIDAY NIGHT

        The most extraordinary thing to my mind, of all the strange and
        wonderful things that happened upon that Friday, was the dovetailing
        of the commonplace habits of our social order with the first
        beginnings of the series of events that was to topple that social
        order headlong. If on Friday night you had taken a pair of compasses
        and drawn a circle with a radius of five miles round the Woking sand
        pits, I doubt if you would have had one human being outside it, unless
        it were some relation of Stent or of the three or four cyclists or
        London people lying dead on the common, whose emotions or habits were
        at all affected by the new-comers. Many people had heard of the
        cylinder, of course, and talked about it in their leisure, but it
        certainly did not make the sensation that an ultimatum to Germany
        would have done.

        In London that night poor Henderson's telegram describing the
        gradual unscrewing of the shot was judged to be a canard, and his
        evening paper, after wiring for authentication from him and receiving
        no reply--the man was killed--decided not to print a special edition.

        Even within the five-mile circle the great majority of people were
        inert. I have already described the behaviour of the men and women to
        whom I spoke. All over the district people were dining and supping;
        working men were gardening after the labours of the day, children
        were being put to bed, young people were wandering through the lanes
        love-making, students sat over their books.

        Maybe there was a murmur in the village streets, a novel and
        dominant topic in the public-houses, and here and there a messenger,
        or even an eye-witness of the later occurrences, caused a whirl of
        excitement, a shouting, and a running to and fro; but for the most
        part the daily routine of working, eating, drinking, sleeping, went on
        as it had done for countless years--as though no planet Mars existed
        in the sky. Even at Woking station and Horsell and Chobham that was
        the case.

        In Woking junction, until a late hour, trains were stopping and
        going on, others were shunting on the sidings, passengers were
        alighting and waiting, and everything was proceeding in the most
        ordinary way. A boy from the town, trenching on Smith's monopoly, was
        selling papers with the afternoon's news. The ringing impact of
        trucks, the sharp whistle of the engines from the junction, mingled
        with their shouts of "Men from Mars!" Excited men came into the
        station about nine o'clock with incredible tidings, and caused no more
        disturbance than drunkards might have done. People rattling
        Londonwards peered into the darkness outside the carriage windows, and
        saw only a rare, flickering, vanishing spark dance up from the
        direction of Horsell, a red glow and a thin veil of smoke driving
        across the stars, and thought that nothing more serious than a heath
        fire was happening. It was only round the edge of the common that any
        disturbance was perceptible. There were half a dozen villas burning
        on the Woking border. There were lights in all the houses on the
        common side of the three villages, and the people there kept awake
        till dawn.

        A curious crowd lingered restlessly, people coming and going but
        the crowd remaining, both on the Chobham and Horsell bridges. One or
        two adventurous souls, it was afterwards found, went into the darkness
        and crawled quite near the Martians; but they never returned, for now
        and again a light-ray, like the beam of a warship's searchlight swept
        the common, and the Heat-Ray was ready to follow. Save for such, that
        big area of common was silent and desolate, and the charred bodies lay
        about on it all night under the stars, and all the next day. A noise
        of hammering from the pit was heard by many people.

        So you have the state of things on Friday night. In the centre,
        sticking into the skin of our old planet Earth like a poisoned dart,
        was this cylinder. But the poison was scarcely working yet. Around
        it was a patch of silent common, smouldering in places, and with a few
        dark, dimly seen objects lying in contorted attitudes here and there.
        Here and there was a burning bush or tree. Beyond was a fringe of
        excitement, and farther than that fringe the inflammation had not
        crept as yet. In the rest of the world the stream of life still
        flowed as it had flowed for immemorial years. The fever of war that
        would presently clog vein and artery, deaden nerve and destroy brain,
        had still to develop.

        All night long the Martians were hammering and stirring, sleepless,
        indefatigable, at work upon the machines they were making ready, and
        ever and again a puff of greenish-white smoke whirled up to the
        starlit sky.

        About eleven a company of soldiers came through Horsell, and
        deployed along the edge of the common to form a cordon. Later a
        second company marched through Chobham to deploy on the north side of
        the common. Several officers from the Inkerman barracks had been on
        the common earlier in the day, and one, Major Eden, was reported to be
        missing. The colonel of the regiment came to the Chobham bridge and
        was busy questioning the crowd at midnight. The military authorities
        were certainly alive to the seriousness of the business. About
        eleven, the next morning's papers were able to say, a squadron of
        hussars, two Maxims, and about four hundred men of the Cardigan
        regiment started from Aldershot.

        A few seconds after midnight the crowd in the Chertsey road,
        Woking, saw a star fall from heaven into the pine woods to the
        northwest. It had a greenish colour, and caused a silent brightness
        like summer lightning. This was the second cylinder.

        CHAPTER NINE

        THE FIGHTING BEGINS

        Saturday lives in my memory as a day of suspense. It was a day of
        lassitude too, hot and close, with, I am told, a rapidly fluctuating
        barometer. I had slept but little, though my wife had succeeded in
        sleeping, and I rose early. I went into my garden before breakfast
        and stood listening, but towards the common there was nothing stirring
        but a lark.

        The milkman came as usual. I heard the rattle of his chariot and I
        went round to the side gate to ask the latest news. He told me that
        during the night the Martians had been surrounded by troops, and that
        guns were expected. Then--a familiar, reassuring note--I heard a train
        running towards Woking.

        "They aren't to be killed," said the milkman, "if that can possibly
        be avoided."

        I saw my neighbour gardening, chatted with him for a time, and then
        strolled in to breakfast. It was a most unexceptional morning. My
        neighbour was of opinion that the troops would be able to capture or
        to destroy the Martians during the day.

        "It's a pity they make themselves so unapproachable," he said. "It
        would be curious to know how they live on another planet; we might
        learn a thing or two."

        He came up to the fence and extended a handful of strawberries, for
        his gardening was as generous as it was enthusiastic. At the same
        time he told me of the burning of the pine woods about the Byfleet
        Golf Links.

        "They say," said he, "that there's another of those blessed things
        fallen there--number two. But one's enough, surely. This lot'll cost
        the insurance people a pretty penny before everything's settled." He
        laughed with an air of the greatest good humour as he said this. The
        woods, he said, were still burning, and pointed out a haze of smoke to
        me. "They will be hot under foot for days, on account of the thick
        soil of pine needles and turf," he said, and then grew serious over
        "poor Ogilvy."

        After breakfast, instead of working, I decided to walk down
        towards the common. Under the railway bridge I found a group of
        soldiers--sappers, I think, men in small round caps, dirty red jackets
        unbuttoned, and showing their blue shirts, dark trousers, and boots
        coming to the calf. They told me no one was allowed over the canal,
        and, looking along the road towards the bridge, I saw one of the
        Cardigan men standing sentinel there. I talked with these soldiers
        for a time; I told them of my sight of the Martians on the previous
        evening. None of them had seen the Martians, and they had but the
        vaguest ideas of them, so that they plied me with questions. They
        said that they did not know who had authorised the movements of the
        troops; their idea was that a dispute had arisen at the Horse Guards.
        The ordinary sapper is a great deal better educated than the common
        soldier, and they discussed the peculiar conditions of the possible
        fight with some acuteness. I described the Heat-Ray to them, and they
        began to argue among themselves.

        "Crawl up under cover and rush 'em, say I," said one.

        "Get aht!" said another. "What's cover against this 'ere 'eat?
        Sticks to cook yer! What we got to do is to go as near as the
        ground'll let us, and then drive a trench."

        "Blow yer trenches! You always want trenches; you ought to ha'
        been born a rabbit Snippy."

        "Ain't they got any necks, then?" said a third, abruptly--a little,
        contemplative, dark man, smoking a pipe.

        I repeated my description.

        "Octopuses," said he, "that's what I calls 'em. Talk about fishers
        of men--fighters of fish it is this time!"

        "It ain't no murder killing beasts like that," said the first
        speaker.

        "Why not shell the darned things strite off and finish 'em?" said
        the little dark man. "You carn tell what they might do."

        "Where's your shells?" said the first speaker. "There ain't no
        time. Do it in a rush, that's my tip, and do it at once."

        So they discussed it. After a while I left them, and went on to
        the railway station to get as many morning papers as I could.

        But I will not weary the reader with a description of that long
        morning and of the longer afternoon. I did not succeed in getting a
        glimpse of the common, for even Horsell and Chobham church towers were
        in the hands of the military authorities. The soldiers I addressed
        didn't know anything; the officers were mysterious as well as busy. I
        found people in the town quite secure again in the presence of the
        military, and I heard for the first time from Marshall, the
        tobacconist, that his son was among the dead on the common. The
        soldiers had made the people on the outskirts of Horsell lock up and
        leave their houses.

        I got back to lunch about two, very tired for, as I have said, the
        day was extremely hot and dull; and in order to refresh myself I took
        a cold bath in the afternoon. About half past four I went up to the
        railway station to get an evening paper, for the morning papers had
        contained only a very inaccurate description of the killing of Stent,
        Henderson, Ogilvy, and the others. But there was little I didn't
        know. The Martians did not show an inch of themselves. They seemed
        busy in their pit, and there was a sound of hammering and an almost
        continuous streamer of smoke. Apparently they were busy getting ready
        for a struggle. "Fresh attempts have been made to signal, but without
        success," was the stereotyped formula of the papers. A sapper told me
        it was done by a man in a ditch with a flag on a long pole. The
        Martians took as much notice of such advances as we should of the
        lowing of a cow.

        I must confess the sight of all this armament, all this
        preparation, greatly excited me. My imagination became belligerent,
        and defeated the invaders in a dozen striking ways; something of my
        schoolboy dreams of battle and heroism came back. It hardly seemed a
        fair fight to me at that time. They seemed very helpless in that pit
        of theirs.

        About three o'clock there began the thud of a gun at measured
        intervals from Chertsey or Addlestone. I learned that the smouldering
        pine wood into which the second cylinder had fallen was being shelled,
        in the hope of destroying that object before it opened. It was only
        about five, however, that a field gun reached Chobham for use against
        the first body of Martians.

        About six in the evening, as I sat at tea with my wife in the
        summerhouse talking vigorously about the battle that was lowering upon
        us, I heard a muffled detonation from the common, and immediately
        after a gust of firing. Close on the heels of that came a violent
        rattling crash, quite close to us, that shook the ground; and,
        starting out upon the lawn, I saw the tops of the trees about the
        Oriental College burst into smoky red flame, and the tower of the
        little church beside it slide down into ruin. The pinnacle of the
        mosque had vanished, and the roof line of the college itself looked as
        if a hundred-ton gun had been at work upon it. One of our chimneys
        cracked as if a shot had hit it, flew, and a piece of it came
        clattering down the tiles and made a heap of broken red fragments upon
        the flower bed by my study window.

        I and my wife stood amazed. Then I realised that the crest of
        Maybury Hill must be within range of the Martians' Heat-Ray now that
        the college was cleared out of the way.

        At that I gripped my wife's arm, and without ceremony ran her out
        into the road. Then I fetched out the servant, telling her I would go
        upstairs myself for the box she was clamouring for.

        "We can't possibly stay here," I said; and as I spoke the firing
        reopened for a moment upon the common.

        "But where are we to go?" said my wife in terror.

        I thought perplexed. Then I remembered her cousins at Leatherhead.

        "Leatherhead!" I shouted above the sudden noise.

        She looked away from me downhill. The people were coming out of
        their houses, astonished.

        "How are we to get to Leatherhead?" she said.

        Down the hill I saw a bevy of hussars ride under the railway
        bridge; three galloped through the open gates of the Oriental College;
        two others dismounted, and began running from house to house. The
        sun, shining through the smoke that drove up from the tops of the
        trees, seemed blood red, and threw an unfamiliar lurid light upon
        everything.

        "Stop here," said I; "you are safe here"; and I started off at once
        for the Spotted Dog, for I knew the landlord had a horse and dog cart.
        I ran, for I perceived that in a moment everyone upon this side of the
        hill would be moving. I found him in his bar, quite unaware of what
        was going on behind his house. A man stood with his back to me,
        talking to him.

        "I must have a pound," said the landlord, "and I've no one to drive
        it."

        "I'll give you two," said I, over the stranger's shoulder.

        "What for?"

        "And I'll bring it back by midnight," I said.

        "Lord!" said the landlord; "what's the hurry? I'm selling my bit
        of a pig. Two pounds, and you bring it back? What's going on now?"

        I explained hastily that I had to leave my home, and so secured the
        dog cart. At the time it did not seem to me nearly so urgent that the
        landlord should leave his. I took care to have the cart there and
        then, drove it off down the road, and, leaving it in charge of my wife
        and servant, rushed into my house and packed a few valuables, such
        plate as we had, and so forth. The beech trees below the house were
        burning while I did this, and the palings up the road glowed red.
        While I was occupied in this way, one of the dismounted hussars came
        running up. He was going from house to house, warning people to
        leave. He was going on as I came out of my front door, lugging my
        treasures, done up in a tablecloth. I shouted after him:

        "What news?"

        He turned, stared, bawled something about "crawling out in a thing
        like a dish cover," and ran on to the gate of the house at the crest.
        A sudden whirl of black smoke driving across the road hid him for a
        moment. I ran to my neighbour's door and rapped to satisfy myself of
        what I already knew, that his wife had gone to London with him and had
        locked up their house. I went in again, according to my promise, to
        get my servant's box, lugged it out, clapped it beside her on the tail
        of the dog cart, and then caught the reins and jumped up into the
        driver's seat beside my wife. In another moment we were clear of the
        smoke and noise, and spanking down the opposite slope of Maybury Hill
        towards Old Woking.

        In front was a quiet sunny landscape, a wheat field ahead on either
        side of the road, and the Maybury Inn with its swinging sign. I saw
        the doctor's cart ahead of me. At the bottom of the hill I turned my
        head to look at the hillside I was leaving. Thick streamers of black
        smoke shot with threads of red fire were driving up into the still
        air, and throwing dark shadows upon the green treetops eastward. The
        smoke already extended far away to the east and west--to the Byfleet
        pine woods eastward, and to Woking on the west. The road was dotted
        with people running towards us. And very faint now, but very distinct
        through the hot, quiet air, one heard the whirr of a machine-gun that
        was presently stilled, and an intermittent cracking of rifles.
        Apparently the Martians were setting fire to everything within range
        of their Heat-Ray.

        I am not an expert driver, and I had immediately to turn my
        attention to the horse. When I looked back again the second hill had
        hidden the black smoke. I slashed the horse with the whip, and gave
        him a loose rein until Woking and Send lay between us and that
        quivering tumult. I overtook and passed the doctor between Woking and
        Send.

        CHAPTER TEN

        IN THE STORM

        Leatherhead is about twelve miles from Maybury Hill. The scent of
        hay was in the air through the lush meadows beyond Pyrford, and the
        hedges on either side were sweet and gay with multitudes of dog-roses.
        The heavy firing that had broken out while we were driving down
        Maybury Hill ceased as abruptly as it began, leaving the evening very
        peaceful and still. We got to Leatherhead without misadventure about
        nine o'clock, and the horse had an hour's rest while I took supper
        with my cousins and commended my wife to their care.

        My wife was curiously silent throughout the drive, and seemed
        oppressed with forebodings of evil. I talked to her reassuringly,
        pointing out that the Martians were tied to the Pit by sheer
        heaviness, and at the utmost could but crawl a little out of it; but
        she answered only in monosyllables. Had it not been for my promise to
        the innkeeper, she would, I think, have urged me to stay in
        Leatherhead that night. Would that I had! Her face, I remember, was
        very white as we parted.

        For my own part, I had been feverishly excited all day. Something
        very like the war fever that occasionally runs through a civilised
        community had got into my blood, and in my heart I was not so very
        sorry that I had to return to Maybury that night. I was even afraid
        that that last fusillade I had heard might mean the extermination of
        our invaders from Mars. I can best express my state of mind by saying
        that I wanted to be in at the death.

        It was nearly eleven when I started to return. The night was
        unexpectedly dark; to me, walking out of the lighted passage of my
        cousins' house, it seemed indeed black, and it was as hot and close as
        the day. Overhead the clouds were driving fast, albeit not a breath
        stirred the shrubs about us. My cousins' man lit both lamps. Happily,
        I knew the road intimately. My wife stood in the light of the
        doorway, and watched me until I jumped up into the dog cart. Then
        abruptly she turned and went in, leaving my cousins side by side
        wishing me good hap.

        I was a little depressed at first with the contagion of my wife's
        fears, but very soon my thoughts reverted to the Martians. At that
        time I was absolutely in the dark as to the course of the evening's
        fighting. I did not know even the circumstances that had precipitated
        the conflict. As I came through Ockham (for that was the way I
        returned, and not through Send and Old Woking) I saw along the western
        horizon a blood-red glow, which as I drew nearer, crept slowly up the
        sky. The driving clouds of the gathering thunderstorm mingled there
        with masses of black and red smoke.

        Ripley Street was deserted, and except for a lighted window or so
        the village showed not a sign of life; but I narrowly escaped an
        accident at the corner of the road to Pyrford, where a knot of people
        stood with their backs to me. They said nothing to me as I passed. I
        do not know what they knew of the things happening beyond the hill,
        nor do I know if the silent houses I passed on my way were sleeping
        securely, or deserted and empty, or harassed and watching against the
        terror of the night.

        From Ripley until I came through Pyrford I was in the valley of the
        Wey, and the red glare was hidden from me. As I ascended the little
        hill beyond Pyrford Church the glare came into view again, and the
        trees about me shivered with the first intimation of the storm that
        was upon me. Then I heard midnight pealing out from Pyrford Church
        behind me, and then came the silhouette of Maybury Hill, with its
        tree-tops and roofs black and sharp against the red.

        Even as I beheld this a lurid green glare lit the road about me and
        showed the distant woods towards Addlestone. I felt a tug at the
        reins. I saw that the driving clouds had been pierced as it were by a
        thread of green fire, suddenly lighting their confusion and falling
        into the field to my left. It was the third falling star!

        Close on its apparition, and blindingly violet by contrast, danced
        out the first lightning of the gathering storm, and the thunder burst
        like a rocket overhead. The horse took the bit between his teeth and
        bolted.

        A moderate incline runs towards the foot of Maybury Hill, and down
        this we clattered. Once the lightning had begun, it went on in as
        rapid a succession of flashes as I have ever seen. The thunderclaps,
        treading one on the heels of another and with a strange crackling
        accompaniment, sounded more like the working of a gigantic electric
        machine than the usual detonating reverberations. The flickering
        light was blinding and confusing, and a thin hail smote gustily at my
        face as I drove down the slope.

        At first I regarded little but the road before me, and then
        abruptly my attention was arrested by something that was moving
        rapidly down the opposite slope of Maybury Hill. At first I took it
        for the wet roof of a house, but one flash following another showed it
        to be in swift rolling movement. It was an elusive vision--a moment
        of bewildering darkness, and then, in a flash like daylight, the red
        masses of the Orphanage near the crest of the hill, the green tops of
        the pine trees, and this problematical object came out clear and sharp
        and bright.

        And this Thing I saw! How can I describe it? A monstrous tripod,
        higher than many houses, striding over the young pine trees, and
        smashing them aside in its career; a walking engine of glittering
        metal, striding now across the heather; articulate ropes of steel
        dangling from it, and the clattering tumult of its passage mingling
        with the riot of the thunder. A flash, and it came out vividly,
        heeling over one way with two feet in the air, to vanish and reappear
        almost instantly as it seemed, with the next flash, a hundred yards
        nearer. Can you imagine a milking stool tilted and bowled violently
        along the ground? That was the impression those instant flashes gave.
        But instead of a milking stool imagine it a great body of machinery on
        a tripod stand.

        Then suddenly the trees in the pine wood ahead of me were parted,
        as brittle reeds are parted by a man thrusting through them; they were
        snapped off and driven headlong, and a second huge tripod appeared,
        rushing, as it seemed, headlong towards me. And I was galloping hard
        to meet it! At the sight of the second monster my nerve went
        altogether. Not stopping to look again, I wrenched the horse's head
        hard round to the right and in another moment the dog cart had heeled
        over upon the horse; the shafts smashed noisily, and I was flung
        sideways and fell heavily into a shallow pool of water.

        I crawled out almost immediately, and crouched, my feet still in
        the water, under a clump of furze. The horse lay motionless (his neck
        was broken, poor brute!) and by the lightning flashes I saw the black
        bulk of the overturned dog cart and the silhouette of the wheel still
        spinning slowly. In another moment the colossal mechanism went
        striding by me, and passed uphill towards Pyrford.

        Seen nearer, the Thing was incredibly strange, for it was no mere
        insensate machine driving on its way. Machine it was, with a ringing
        metallic pace, and long, flexible, glittering tentacles (one of which
        gripped a young pine tree) swinging and rattling about its strange
        body. It picked its road as it went striding along, and the brazen
        hood that surmounted it moved to and fro with the inevitable
        suggestion of a head looking about. Behind the main body was a huge
        mass of white metal like a gigantic fisherman's basket, and puffs of
        green smoke squirted out from the joints of the limbs as the monster
        swept by me. And in an instant it was gone.

        So much I saw then, all vaguely for the flickering of the
        lightning, in blinding highlights and dense black shadows.

        As it passed it set up an exultant deafening howl that drowned the
        thunder--"Aloo! Aloo!"--and in another minute it was with its
        companion, half a mile away, stooping over something in the field. I
        have no doubt this Thing in the field was the third of the ten
        cylinders they had fired at us from Mars.

        For some minutes I lay there in the rain and darkness watching, by
        the intermittent light, these monstrous beings of metal moving about
        in the distance over the hedge tops. A thin hail was now beginning,
        and as it came and went their figures grew misty and then flashed into
        clearness again. Now and then came a gap in the lightning, and the
        night swallowed them up.

        I was soaked with hail above and puddle water below. It was some
        time before my blank astonishment would let me struggle up the bank to
        a drier position, or think at all of my imminent peril.

        Not far from me was a little one-roomed squatter's hut of wood,
        surrounded by a patch of potato garden. I struggled to my feet at
        last, and, crouching and making use of every chance of cover, I made a
        run for this. I hammered at the door, but I could not make the people
        hear (if there were any people inside), and after a time I desisted,
        and, availing myself of a ditch for the greater part of the way,
        succeeded in crawling, unobserved by these monstrous machines, into
        the pine woods towards Maybury.

        Under cover of this I pushed on, wet and shivering now, towards my
        own house. I walked among the trees trying to find the footpath. It
        was very dark indeed in the wood, for the lightning was now becoming
        infrequent, and the hail, which was pouring down in a torrent, fell in
        columns through the gaps in the heavy foliage.

        If I had fully realised the meaning of all the things I had seen I
        should have immediately worked my way round through Byfleet to Street
        Cobham, and so gone back to rejoin my wife at Leatherhead. But that
        night the strangeness of things about me, and my physical
        wretchedness, prevented me, for I was bruised, weary, wet to the skin,
        deafened and blinded by the storm.

        I had a vague idea of going on to my own house, and that was as
        much motive as I had. I staggered through the trees, fell into a
        ditch and bruised my knees against a plank, and finally splashed out
        into the lane that ran down from the College Arms. I say splashed,
        for the storm water was sweeping the sand down the hill in a muddy
        torrent. There in the darkness a man blundered into me and sent me
        reeling back.

        He gave a cry of terror, sprang sideways, and rushed on before I
        could gather my wits sufficiently to speak to him. So heavy was the
        stress of the storm just at this place that I had the hardest task to
        win my way up the hill. I went close up to the fence on the left and
        worked my way along its palings.

        Near the top I stumbled upon something soft, and, by a flash of
        lightning, saw between my feet a heap of black broadcloth and a pair
        of boots. Before I could distinguish clearly how the man lay, the
        flicker of light had passed. I stood over him waiting for the next
        flash. When it came, I saw that he was a sturdy man, cheaply but not
        shabbily dressed; his head was bent under his body, and he lay
        crumpled up close to the fence, as though he had been flung violently
        against it.

        Overcoming the repugnance natural to one who had never before
        touched a dead body, I stooped and turned him over to feel for his
        heart. He was quite dead. Apparently his neck had been broken. The
        lightning flashed for a third time, and his face leaped upon me. I
        sprang to my feet. It was the landlord of the Spotted Dog, whose
        conveyance I had taken.

        I stepped over him gingerly and pushed on up the hill. I made my
        way by the police station and the College Arms towards my own house.
        Nothing was burning on the hillside, though from the common there
        still came a red glare and a rolling tumult of ruddy smoke beating up
        against the drenching hail. So far as I could see by the flashes, the
        houses about me were mostly uninjured. By the College Arms a dark
        heap lay in the road.

        Down the road towards Maybury Bridge there were voices and the
        sound of feet, but I had not the courage to shout or to go to them. I
        let myself in with my latchkey, closed, locked and bolted the door,
        staggered to the foot of the staircase, and sat down. My imagination
        was full of those striding metallic monsters, and of the dead body
        smashed against the fence.

        I crouched at the foot of the staircase with my back to the wall,
        shivering violently.

        CHAPTER ELEVEN

        AT THE WINDOW

        I have already said that my storms of emotion have a trick of
        exhausting themselves. After a time I discovered that I was cold and
        wet, and with little pools of water about me on the stair carpet. I
        got up almost mechanically, went into the dining room and drank some
        whiskey, and then I was moved to change my clothes.

        After I had done that I went upstairs to my study, but why I did so
        I do not know. The window of my study looks over the trees and the
        railway towards Horsell Common. In the hurry of our departure this
        window had been left open. The passage was dark, and, by contrast with
        the picture the window frame enclosed, the side of the room seemed
        impenetrably dark. I stopped short in the doorway.

        The thunderstorm had passed. The towers of the Oriental College
        and the pine trees about it had gone, and very far away, lit by a
        vivid red glare, the common about the sand pits was visible. Across
        the light huge black shapes, grotesque and strange, moved busily to
        and fro.

        It seemed indeed as if the whole country in that direction was on
        fire--a broad hillside set with minute tongues of flame, swaying and
        writhing with the gusts of the dying storm, and throwing a red
        reflection upon the cloud-scud above. Every now and then a haze of
        smoke from some nearer conflagration drove across the window and hid
        the Martian shapes. I could not see what they were doing, nor the
        clear form of them, nor recognise the black objects they were busied
        upon. Neither could I see the nearer fire, though the reflections of
        it danced on the wall and ceiling of the study. A sharp, resinous
        tang of burning was in the air.

        I closed the door noiselessly and crept towards the window. As I
        did so, the view opened out until, on the one hand, it reached to the
        houses about Woking station, and on the other to the charred and
        blackened pine woods of Byfleet. There was a light down below the
        hill, on the railway, near the arch, and several of the houses along
        the Maybury road and the streets near the station were glowing ruins.
        The light upon the railway puzzled me at first; there were a black
        heap and a vivid glare, and to the right of that a row of yellow
        oblongs. Then I perceived this was a wrecked train, the fore part
        smashed and on fire, the hinder carriages still upon the rails.

        Between these three main centres of light--the houses, the train,
        and the burning county towards Chobham--stretched irregular patches of
        dark country, broken here and there by intervals of dimly glowing and
        smoking ground. It was the strangest spectacle, that black expanse set
        with fire. It reminded me, more than anything else, of the Potteries
        at night. At first I could distinguish no people at all, though I
        peered intently for them. Later I saw against the light of Woking
        station a number of black figures hurrying one after the other across
        the line.

        And this was the little world in which I had been living securely
        for years, this fiery chaos! What had happened in the last seven
        hours I still did not know; nor did I know, though I was beginning to
        guess, the relation between these mechanical colossi and the sluggish
        lumps I had seen disgorged from the cylinder. With a queer feeling of
        impersonal interest I turned my desk chair to the window, sat down,
        and stared at the blackened country, and particularly at the three
        gigantic black things that were going to and fro in the glare about
        the sand pits.

        They seemed amazingly busy. I began to ask myself what they could
        be. Were they intelligent mechanisms? Such a thing I felt was
        impossible. Or did a Martian sit within each, ruling, directing,
        using, much as a man's brain sits and rules in his body? I began to
        compare the things to human machines, to ask myself for the first time
        in my life how an ironclad or a steam engine would seem to an
        intelligent lower animal.

        The storm had left the sky clear, and over the smoke of the burning
        land the little fading pinpoint of Mars was dropping into the west,
        when a soldier came into my garden. I heard a slight scraping at the
        fence, and rousing myself from the lethargy that had fallen upon me, I
        looked down and saw him dimly, clambering over the palings. At the
        sight of another human being my torpor passed, and I leaned out of the
        window eagerly.

        "Hist!" said I, in a whisper.

        He stopped astride of the fence in doubt. Then he came over and
        across the lawn to the corner of the house. He bent down and stepped
        softly.

        "Who's there?" he said, also whispering, standing under the window
        and peering up.

        "Where are you going?" I asked.

        "God knows."

        "Are you trying to hide?"

        "That's it."

        "Come into the house," I said.

        I went down, unfastened the door, and let him in, and locked the
        door again. I could not see his face. He was hatless, and his coat
        was unbuttoned.

        "My God!" he said, as I drew him in.

        "What has happened?" I asked.

        "What hasn't?" In the obscurity I could see he made a gesture of
        despair. "They wiped us out--simply wiped us out," he repeated again
        and again.

        He followed me, almost mechanically, into the dining room.

        "Take some whiskey," I said, pouring out a stiff dose.

        He drank it. Then abruptly he sat down before the table, put his
        head on his arms, and began to sob and weep like a little boy, in a
        perfect passion of emotion, while I, with a curious forgetfulness of
        my own recent despair, stood beside him, wondering.

        It was a long time before he could steady his nerves to answer my
        questions, and then he answered perplexingly and brokenly. He was a
        driver in the artillery, and had only come into action about seven. At
        that time firing was going on across the common, and it was said the
        first party of Martians were crawling slowly towards their second
        cylinder under cover of a metal shield.

        Later this shield staggered up on tripod legs and became the first
        of the fighting-machines I had seen. The gun he drove had been
        unlimbered near Horsell, in order to command the sand pits, and its
        arrival it was that had precipitated the action. As the limber
        gunners went to the rear, his horse trod in a rabbit hole and came
        down, throwing him into a depression of the ground. At the same
        moment the gun exploded behind him, the ammunition blew up, there was
        fire all about him, and he found himself lying under a heap of charred
        dead men and dead horses.

        "I lay still," he said, "scared out of my wits, with the fore quarter
        of a horse atop of me. We'd been wiped out. And the smell--good
        God! Like burnt meat! I was hurt across the back by the fall of
        the horse, and there I had to lie until I felt better. Just like
        parade it had been a minute before--then stumble, bang, swish!"

        "Wiped out!" he said.

        He had hid under the dead horse for a long time, peeping out
        furtively across the common. The Cardigan men had tried a rush, in
        skirmishing order, at the pit, simply to be swept out of existence.
        Then the monster had risen to its feet and had begun to walk leisurely
        to and fro across the common among the few fugitives, with its
        headlike hood turning about exactly like the head of a cowled human
        being. A kind of arm carried a complicated metallic case, about which
        green flashes scintillated, and out of the funnel of this there smoked
        the Heat-Ray.

        In a few minutes there was, so far as the soldier could see, not a
        living thing left upon the common, and every bush and tree upon it
        that was not already a blackened skeleton was burning. The hussars
        had been on the road beyond the curvature of the ground, and he saw
        nothing of them. He heard the Martians rattle for a time and then
        become still. The giant saved Woking station and its cluster of houses
        until the last; then in a moment the Heat-Ray was brought to bear, and
        the town became a heap of fiery ruins. Then the Thing shut off the
        Heat-Ray, and turning its back upon the artilleryman, began to waddle
        away towards the smouldering pine woods that sheltered the second
        cylinder. As it did so a second glittering Titan built itself up out
        of the pit.

        The second monster followed the first, and at that the artilleryman
        began to crawl very cautiously across the hot heather ash towards
        Horsell. He managed to get alive into the ditch by the side of the
        road, and so escaped to Woking. There his story became ejaculatory.
        The place was impassable. It seems there were a few people alive
        there, frantic for the most part and many burned and scalded. He was
        turned aside by the fire, and hid among some almost scorching heaps of
        broken wall as one of the Martian giants returned. He saw this one
        pursue a man, catch him up in one of its steely tentacles, and knock
        his head against the trunk of a pine tree. At last, after nightfall,
        the artilleryman made a rush for it and got over the railway
        embankment.

        Since then he had been skulking along towards Maybury, in the hope
        of getting out of danger Londonward. People were hiding in trenches
        and cellars, and many of the survivors had made off towards Woking
        village and Send. He had been consumed with thirst until he found one
        of the water mains near the railway arch smashed, and the water
        bubbling out like a spring upon the road.

        That was the story I got from him, bit by bit. He grew calmer
        telling me and trying to make me see the things he had seen. He had
        eaten no food since midday, he told me early in his narrative, and I
        found some mutton and bread in the pantry and brought it into the
        room. We lit no lamp for fear of attracting the Martians, and ever
        and again our hands would touch upon bread or meat. As he talked,
        things about us came darkly out of the darkness, and the trampled
        bushes and broken rose trees outside the window grew distinct. It
        would seem that a number of men or animals had rushed across the lawn.
        I began to see his face, blackened and haggard, as no doubt mine was
        also.

        When we had finished eating we went softly upstairs to my study,
        and I looked again out of the open window. In one night the valley
        had become a valley of ashes. The fires had dwindled now. Where
        flames had been there were now streamers of smoke; but the countless
        ruins of shattered and gutted houses and blasted and blackened trees
        that the night had hidden stood out now gaunt and terrible in the
        pitiless light of dawn. Yet here and there some object had had the
        luck to escape--a white railway signal here, the end of a greenhouse
        there, white and fresh amid the wreckage. Never before in the history
        of warfare had destruction been so indiscriminate and so universal.
        And shining with the growing light of the east, three of the metallic
        giants stood about the pit, their cowls rotating as though they were
        surveying the desolation they had made.

        It seemed to me that the pit had been enlarged, and ever and again
        puffs of vivid green vapour streamed up and out of it towards the
        brightening dawn--streamed up, whirled, broke, and vanished.

        Beyond were the pillars of fire about Chobham. They became pillars
        of bloodshot smoke at the first touch of day.

        CHAPTER TWELVE

        WHAT I SAW OF THE DESTRUCTION OF WEYBRIDGE AND SHEPPERTON

        As the dawn grew brighter we withdrew from the window from which we
        had watched the Martians, and went very quietly downstairs.

        The artilleryman agreed with me that the house was no place to stay
        in. He proposed, he said, to make his way Londonward, and thence
        rejoin his battery--No. 12, of the Horse Artillery. My plan was to
        return at once to Leatherhead; and so greatly had the strength of the
        Martians impressed me that I had determined to take my wife to
        Newhaven, and go with her out of the country forthwith. For I already
        perceived clearly that the country about London must inevitably be the
        scene of a disastrous struggle before such creatures as these could be
        destroyed.

        Between us and Leatherhead, however, lay the third cylinder, with
        its guarding giants. Had I been alone, I think I should have taken my
        chance and struck across country. But the artilleryman dissuaded me:
        "It's no kindness to the right sort of wife," he said, "to make her a
        widow"; and in the end I agreed to go with him, under cover of the
        woods, northward as far as Street Cobham before I parted with him.
        Thence I would make a big detour by Epsom to reach Leatherhead.

        I should have started at once, but my companion had been in active
        service and he knew better than that. He made me ransack the house
        for a flask, which he filled with whiskey; and we lined every
        available pocket with packets of biscuits and slices of meat. Then
        we crept out of the house, and ran as quickly as we could down the
        ill-made road by which I had come overnight. The houses seemed
        deserted. In the road lay a group of three charred bodies close
        together, struck dead by the Heat-Ray; and here and there were things
        that people had dropped--a clock, a slipper, a silver spoon, and the
        like poor valuables. At the corner turning up towards the post
        office a little cart, filled with boxes and furniture, and horseless,
        heeled over on a broken wheel. A cash box had been hastily smashed
        open and thrown under the debris.

        Except the lodge at the Orphanage, which was still on fire, none of
        the houses had suffered very greatly here. The Heat-Ray had shaved
        the chimney tops and passed. Yet, save ourselves, there did not seem
        to be a living soul on Maybury Hill. The majority of the inhabitants
        had escaped, I suppose, by way of the Old Woking road--the road I had
        taken when I drove to Leatherhead--or they had hidden.

        We went down the lane, by the body of the man in black, sodden now
        from the overnight hail, and broke into the woods at the foot of the
        hill. We pushed through these towards the railway without meeting a
        soul. The woods across the line were but the scarred and blackened
        ruins of woods; for the most part the trees had fallen, but a certain
        proportion still stood, dismal grey stems, with dark brown foliage
        instead of green.

        On our side the fire had done no more than scorch the nearer trees;
        it had failed to secure its footing. In one place the woodmen had
        been at work on Saturday; trees, felled and freshly trimmed, lay in a
        clearing, with heaps of sawdust by the sawing-machine and its engine.
        Hard by was a temporary hut, deserted. There was not a breath of wind
        this morning, and everything was strangely still. Even the birds were
        hushed, and as we hurried along I and the artilleryman talked in
        whispers and looked now and again over our shoulders. Once or twice
        we stopped to listen.

        After a time we drew near the road, and as we did so we heard the
        clatter of hoofs and saw through the tree stems three cavalry soldiers
        riding slowly towards Woking. We hailed them, and they halted while
        we hurried towards them. It was a lieutenant and a couple of privates
        of the 8th Hussars, with a stand like a theodolite, which the
        artilleryman told me was a heliograph.

        "You are the first men I've seen coming this way this morning,"
        said the lieutenant. "What's brewing?"

        His voice and face were eager. The men behind him stared
        curiously. The artilleryman jumped down the bank into the road and
        saluted.

        "Gun destroyed last night, sir. Have been hiding. Trying to
        rejoin battery, sir. You'll come in sight of the Martians, I expect,
        about half a mile along this road."

        "What the dickens are they like?" asked the lieutenant.

        "Giants in armour, sir. Hundred feet high. Three legs and a body
        like 'luminium, with a mighty great head in a hood, sir."

        "Get out!" said the lieutenant. "What confounded nonsense!"

        "You'll see, sir. They carry a kind of box, sir, that shoots fire
        and strikes you dead."

        "What d'ye mean--a gun?"

        "No, sir," and the artilleryman began a vivid account of the Heat-Ray.
        Halfway through, the lieutenant interrupted him and looked up at
        me. I was still standing on the bank by the side of the road.

        "It's perfectly true," I said.

        "Well," said the lieutenant, "I suppose it's my business to see it
        too. Look here"--to the artilleryman--"we're detailed here clearing
        people out of their houses. You'd better go along and report yourself
        to Brigadier-General Marvin, and tell him all you know. He's at
        Weybridge. Know the way?"

        "I do," I said; and he turned his horse southward again.

        "Half a mile, you say?" said he.

        "At most," I answered, and pointed over the treetops southward. He
        thanked me and rode on, and we saw them no more.

        Farther along we came upon a group of three women and two children
        in the road, busy clearing out a labourer's cottage. They had
        got hold of a little hand truck, and were piling it up with
        unclean-looking bundles and shabby furniture. They were all too
        assiduously engaged to talk to us as we passed.

        By Byfleet station we emerged from the pine trees, and found the
        country calm and peaceful under the morning sunlight. We were far
        beyond the range of the Heat-Ray there, and had it not been for the
        silent desertion of some of the houses, the stirring movement of
        packing in others, and the knot of soldiers standing on the bridge
        over the railway and staring down the line towards Woking, the day
        would have seemed very like any other Sunday.

        Several farm waggons and carts were moving creakily along the road
        to Addlestone, and suddenly through the gate of a field we saw, across
        a stretch of flat meadow, six twelve-pounders standing neatly at equal
        distances pointing towards Woking. The gunners stood by the guns
        waiting, and the ammunition waggons were at a business-like distance.
        The men stood almost as if under inspection.

        "That's good!" said I. "They will get one fair shot, at any rate."

        The artilleryman hesitated at the gate.

        "I shall go on," he said.

        Farther on towards Weybridge, just over the bridge, there were a
        number of men in white fatigue jackets throwing up a long rampart, and
        more guns behind.

        "It's bows and arrows against the lightning, anyhow," said the
        artilleryman. "They 'aven't seen that fire-beam yet."

        The officers who were not actively engaged stood and stared over
        the treetops southwestward, and the men digging would stop every now
        and again to stare in the same direction.

        Byfleet was in a tumult; people packing, and a score of hussars,
        some of them dismounted, some on horseback, were hunting them about.
        Three or four black government waggons, with crosses in white circles,
        and an old omnibus, among other vehicles, were being loaded in the
        village street. There were scores of people, most of them
        sufficiently sabbatical to have assumed their best clothes. The
        soldiers were having the greatest difficulty in making them realise
        the gravity of their position. We saw one shrivelled old fellow with
        a huge box and a score or more of flower pots containing orchids,
        angrily expostulating with the corporal who would leave them behind.
        I stopped and gripped his arm.

        "Do you know what's over there?" I said, pointing at the pine tops
        that hid the Martians.

        "Eh?" said he, turning. "I was explainin' these is vallyble."

        "Death!" I shouted. "Death is coming! Death!" and leaving him to
        digest that if he could, I hurried on after the artillery-man. At the
        corner I looked back. The soldier had left him, and he was still
        standing by his box, with the pots of orchids on the lid of it, and
        staring vaguely over the trees.

        No one in Weybridge could tell us where the headquarters were
        established; the whole place was in such confusion as I had never seen
        in any town before. Carts, carriages everywhere, the most astonishing
        miscellany of conveyances and horseflesh. The respectable inhabitants
        of the place, men in golf and boating costumes, wives prettily
        dressed, were packing, river-side loafers energetically helping,
        children excited, and, for the most part, highly delighted at this
        astonishing variation of their Sunday experiences. In the midst of it
        all the worthy vicar was very pluckily holding an early celebration,
        and his bell was jangling out above the excitement.

        I and the artilleryman, seated on the step of the drinking
        fountain, made a very passable meal upon what we had brought with
        us. Patrols of soldiers--here no longer hussars, but grenadiers in
        white--were warning people to move now or to take refuge in their
        cellars as soon as the firing began. We saw as we crossed the
        railway bridge that a growing crowd of people had assembled in and
        about the railway station, and the swarming platform was piled with
        boxes and packages. The ordinary traffic had been stopped, I believe,
        in order to allow of the passage of troops and guns to Chertsey, and
        I have heard since that a savage struggle occurred for places in the
        special trains that were put on at a later hour.

        We remained at Weybridge until midday, and at that hour we found
        ourselves at the place near Shepperton Lock where the Wey and Thames
        join. Part of the time we spent helping two old women to pack a
        little cart. The Wey has a treble mouth, and at this point boats are
        to be hired, and there was a ferry across the river. On the
        Shepperton side was an inn with a lawn, and beyond that the tower of
        Shepperton Church--it has been replaced by a spire--rose above the
        trees.

        Here we found an excited and noisy crowd of fugitives. As yet the
        flight had not grown to a panic, but there were already far more
        people than all the boats going to and fro could enable to cross.
        People came panting along under heavy burdens; one husband and wife
        were even carrying a small outhouse door between them, with some of
        their household goods piled thereon. One man told us he meant to try
        to get away from Shepperton station.

        There was a lot of shouting, and one man was even jesting. The idea
        people seemed to have here was that the Martians were simply
        formidable human beings, who might attack and sack the town, to be
        certainly destroyed in the end. Every now and then people would
        glance nervously across the Wey, at the meadows towards Chertsey, but
        everything over there was still.

        Across the Thames, except just where the boats landed, everything
        was quiet, in vivid contrast with the Surrey side. The people who
        landed there from the boats went tramping off down the lane. The big
        ferryboat had just made a journey. Three or four soldiers stood on
        the lawn of the inn, staring and jesting at the fugitives, without
        offering to help. The inn was closed, as it was now within prohibited
        hours.

        "What's that?" cried a boatman, and "Shut up, you fool!" said a man
        near me to a yelping dog. Then the sound came again, this time from
        the direction of Chertsey, a muffled thud--the sound of a gun.

        The fighting was beginning. Almost immediately unseen batteries
        across the river to our right, unseen because of the trees, took up
        the chorus, firing heavily one after the other. A woman screamed.
        Everyone stood arrested by the sudden stir of battle, near us and yet
        invisible to us. Nothing was to be seen save flat meadows, cows
        feeding unconcernedly for the most part, and silvery pollard willows
        motionless in the warm sunlight.

        "The sojers'll stop 'em," said a woman beside me, doubtfully. A
        haziness rose over the treetops.

        Then suddenly we saw a rush of smoke far away up the river, a puff
        of smoke that jerked up into the air and hung; and forthwith the
        ground heaved under foot and a heavy explosion shook the air, smashing
        two or three windows in the houses near, and leaving us astonished.

        "Here they are!" shouted a man in a blue jersey. "Yonder! D'yer
        see them? Yonder!"

        Quickly, one after the other, one, two, three, four of the armoured
        Martians appeared, far away over the little trees, across the flat
        meadows that stretched towards Chertsey, and striding hurriedly
        towards the river. Little cowled figures they seemed at first, going
        with a rolling motion and as fast as flying birds.

        Then, advancing obliquely towards us, came a fifth. Their armoured
        bodies glittered in the sun as they swept swiftly forward upon the
        guns, growing rapidly larger as they drew nearer. One on the extreme
        left, the remotest that is, flourished a huge case high in the air,
        and the ghostly, terrible Heat-Ray I had already seen on Friday night
        smote towards Chertsey, and struck the town.

        At sight of these strange, swift, and terrible creatures the crowd
        near the water's edge seemed to me to be for a moment horror-struck.
        There was no screaming or shouting, but a silence. Then a hoarse
        murmur and a movement of feet--a splashing from the water. A man, too
        frightened to drop the portmanteau he carried on his shoulder, swung
        round and sent me staggering with a blow from the corner of his
        burden. A woman thrust at me with her hand and rushed past me. I
        turned with the rush of the people, but I was not too terrified for
        thought. The terrible Heat-Ray was in my mind. To get under water!
        That was it!

        "Get under water!" I shouted, unheeded.

        I faced about again, and rushed towards the approaching Martian,
        rushed right down the gravelly beach and headlong into the water.
        Others did the same. A boatload of people putting back came leaping
        out as I rushed past. The stones under my feet were muddy and
        slippery, and the river was so low that I ran perhaps twenty feet
        scarcely waist-deep. Then, as the Martian towered overhead scarcely
        a couple of hundred yards away, I flung myself forward under the
        surface. The splashes of the people in the boats leaping into the
        river sounded like thunderclaps in my ears. People were landing
        hastily on both sides of the river. But the Martian machine took no
        more notice for the moment of the people running this way and that
        than a man would of the confusion of ants in a nest against which his
        foot has kicked. When, half suffocated, I raised my head above water,
        the Martian's hood pointed at the batteries that were still firing
        across the river, and as it advanced it swung loose what must have
        been the generator of the Heat-Ray.

        In another moment it was on the bank, and in a stride wading
        halfway across. The knees of its foremost legs bent at the farther
        bank, and in another moment it had raised itself to its full height
        again, close to the village of Shepperton. Forthwith the six guns
        which, unknown to anyone on the right bank, had been hidden behind the
        outskirts of that village, fired simultaneously. The sudden near
        concussion, the last close upon the first, made my heart jump. The
        monster was already raising the case generating the Heat-Ray as the
        first shell burst six yards above the hood.

        I gave a cry of astonishment. I saw and thought nothing of the
        other four Martian monsters; my attention was riveted upon the nearer
        incident. Simultaneously two other shells burst in the air near the
        body as the hood twisted round in time to receive, but not in time to
        dodge, the fourth shell.

        The shell burst clean in the face of the Thing. The hood bulged,
        flashed, was whirled off in a dozen tattered fragments of red flesh
        and glittering metal.

        "Hit!" shouted I, with something between a scream and a cheer.

        I heard answering shouts from the people in the water about me. I
        could have leaped out of the water with that momentary exultation.

        The decapitated colossus reeled like a drunken giant; but it did
        not fall over. It recovered its balance by a miracle, and, no longer
        heeding its steps and with the camera that fired the Heat-Ray now
        rigidly upheld, it reeled swiftly upon Shepperton. The living
        intelligence, the Martian within the hood, was slain and splashed to
        the four winds of heaven, and the Thing was now but a mere intricate
        device of metal whirling to destruction. It drove along in a straight
        line, incapable of guidance. It struck the tower of Shepperton
        Church, smashing it down as the impact of a battering ram might have
        done, swerved aside, blundered on and collapsed with tremendous force
        into the river out of my sight.

        A violent explosion shook the air, and a spout of water, steam,
        mud, and shattered metal shot far up into the sky. As the camera of
        the Heat-Ray hit the water, the latter had immediately flashed into
        steam. In another moment a huge wave, like a muddy tidal bore but
        almost scaldingly hot, came sweeping round the bend upstream. I saw
        people struggling shorewards, and heard their screaming and shouting
        faintly above the seething and roar of the Martian's collapse.

        For a moment I heeded nothing of the heat, forgot the patent need
        of self-preservation. I splashed through the tumultuous water,
        pushing aside a man in black to do so, until I could see round the
        bend. Half a dozen deserted boats pitched aimlessly upon the
        confusion of the waves. The fallen Martian came into sight
        downstream, lying across the river, and for the most part submerged.

        Thick clouds of steam were pouring off the wreckage, and through
        the tumultuously whirling wisps I could see, intermittently and
        vaguely, the gigantic limbs churning the water and flinging a splash
        and spray of mud and froth into the air. The tentacles swayed and
        struck like living arms, and, save for the helpless purposelessness of
        these movements, it was as if some wounded thing were struggling for
        its life amid the waves. Enormous quantities of a ruddy-brown fluid
        were spurting up in noisy jets out of the machine.

        My attention was diverted from this death flurry by a furious
        yelling, like that of the thing called a siren in our manufacturing
        towns. A man, knee-deep near the towing path, shouted inaudibly to me
        and pointed. Looking back, I saw the other Martians advancing with
        gigantic strides down the riverbank from the direction of Chertsey.
        The Shepperton guns spoke this time unavailingly.

        At that I ducked at once under water, and, holding my breath until
        movement was an agony, blundered painfully ahead under the surface as
        long as I could. The water was in a tumult about me, and rapidly
        growing hotter.

        When for a moment I raised my head to take breath and throw the
        hair and water from my eyes, the steam was rising in a whirling white
        fog that at first hid the Martians altogether. The noise was
        deafening. Then I saw them dimly, colossal figures of grey, magnified
        by the mist. They had passed by me, and two were stooping over the
        frothing, tumultuous ruins of their comrade.

        The third and fourth stood beside him in the water, one perhaps two
        hundred yards from me, the other towards Laleham. The generators of
        the Heat-Rays waved high, and the hissing beams smote down this way
        and that.

        The air was full of sound, a deafening and confusing conflict of
        noises--the clangorous din of the Martians, the crash of falling
        houses, the thud of trees, fences, sheds flashing into flame, and the
        crackling and roaring of fire. Dense black smoke was leaping up to
        mingle with the steam from the river, and as the Heat-Ray went to and
        fro over Weybridge its impact was marked by flashes of incandescent
        white, that gave place at once to a smoky dance of lurid flames. The
        nearer houses still stood intact, awaiting their fate, shadowy, faint
        and pallid in the steam, with the fire behind them going to and fro.

        For a moment perhaps I stood there, breast-high in the almost
        boiling water, dumbfounded at my position, hopeless of escape. Through
        the reek I could see the people who had been with me in the river
        scrambling out of the water through the reeds, like little frogs
        hurrying through grass from the advance of a man, or running to and
        fro in utter dismay on the towing path.

        Then suddenly the white flashes of the Heat-Ray came leaping
        towards me. The houses caved in as they dissolved at its touch, and
        darted out flames; the trees changed to fire with a roar. The Ray
        flickered up and down the towing path, licking off the people who ran
        this way and that, and came down to the water's edge not fifty yards
        from where I stood. It swept across the river to Shepperton, and the
        water in its track rose in a boiling weal crested with steam. I
        turned shoreward.

        In another moment the huge wave, well-nigh at the boiling-point had
        rushed upon me. I screamed aloud, and scalded, half blinded,
        agonised, I staggered through the leaping, hissing water towards the
        shore. Had my foot stumbled, it would have been the end. I fell
        helplessly, in full sight of the Martians, upon the broad, bare
        gravelly spit that runs down to mark the angle of the Wey and Thames.
        I expected nothing but death.

        I have a dim memory of the foot of a Martian coming down within a
        score of yards of my head, driving straight into the loose gravel,
        whirling it this way and that and lifting again; of a long suspense,
        and then of the four carrying the debris of their comrade between
        them, now clear and then presently faint through a veil of smoke,
        receding interminably, as it seemed to me, across a vast space of
        river and meadow. And then, very slowly, I realised that by a miracle
        I had escaped.

        CHAPTER THIRTEEN

        HOW I FELL IN WITH THE CURATE

        After getting this sudden lesson in the power of terrestrial
        weapons, the Martians retreated to their original position upon
        Horsell Common; and in their haste, and encumbered with the debris of
        their smashed companion, they no doubt overlooked many such a stray
        and negligible victim as myself. Had they left their comrade and
        pushed on forthwith, there was nothing at that time between them and
        London but batteries of twelve-pounder guns, and they would certainly
        have reached the capital in advance of the tidings of their approach;
        as sudden, dreadful, and destructive their advent would have been as
        the earthquake that destroyed Lisbon a century ago.

        But they were in no hurry. Cylinder followed cylinder on its
        interplanetary flight; every twenty-four hours brought them
        reinforcement. And meanwhile the military and naval authorities, now
        fully alive to the tremendous power of their antagonists, worked with
        furious energy. Every minute a fresh gun came into position until,
        before twilight, every copse, every row of suburban villas on the
        hilly slopes about Kingston and Richmond, masked an expectant black
        muzzle. And through the charred and desolated area--perhaps twenty
        square miles altogether--that encircled the Martian encampment on
        Horsell Common, through charred and ruined villages among the green
        trees, through the blackened and smoking arcades that had been but a
        day ago pine spinneys, crawled the devoted scouts with the heliographs
        that were presently to warn the gunners of the Martian approach. But
        the Martians now understood our command of artillery and the danger of
        human proximity, and not a man ventured within a mile of either
        cylinder, save at the price of his life.

        It would seem that these giants spent the earlier part of the
        afternoon in going to and fro, transferring everything from the second
        and third cylinders--the second in Addlestone Golf Links and the third
        at Pyrford--to their original pit on Horsell Common. Over that, above
        the blackened heather and ruined buildings that stretched far and
        wide, stood one as sentinel, while the rest abandoned their vast
        fighting-machines and descended into the pit. They were hard at work
        there far into the night, and the towering pillar of dense green smoke
        that rose therefrom could be seen from the hills about Merrow, and
        even, it is said, from Banstead and Epsom Downs.

        And while the Martians behind me were thus preparing for their next
        sally, and in front of me Humanity gathered for the battle, I made my
        way with infinite pains and labour from the fire and smoke of burning
        Weybridge towards London.

        I saw an abandoned boat, very small and remote, drifting down-stream;
        and throwing off the most of my sodden clothes, I went after it,
        gained it, and so escaped out of that destruction. There were no
        oars in the boat, but I contrived to paddle, as well as my parboiled
        hands would allow, down the river towards Halliford and Walton, going
        very tediously and continually looking behind me, as you may well
        understand. I followed the river, because I considered that the water
        gave me my best chance of escape should these giants return.

        The hot water from the Martian's overthrow drifted downstream with
        me, so that for the best part of a mile I could see little of either
        bank. Once, however, I made out a string of black figures hurrying
        across the meadows from the direction of Weybridge. Halliford, it
        seemed, was deserted, and several of the houses facing the river were
        on fire. It was strange to see the place quite tranquil, quite
        desolate under the hot blue sky, with the smoke and little threads of
        flame going straight up into the heat of the afternoon. Never before
        had I seen houses burning without the accompaniment of an obstructive
        crowd. A little farther on the dry reeds up the bank were smoking and
        glowing, and a line of fire inland was marching steadily across a late
        field of hay.

        For a long time I drifted, so painful and weary was I after the
        violence I had been through, and so intense the heat upon the water.
        Then my fears got the better of me again, and I resumed my paddling.
        The sun scorched my bare back. At last, as the bridge at Walton was
        coming into sight round the bend, my fever and faintness overcame my
        fears, and I landed on the Middlesex bank and lay down, deadly sick,
        amid the long grass. I suppose the time was then about four or five
        o'clock. I got up presently, walked perhaps half a mile without
        meeting a soul, and then lay down again in the shadow of a hedge. I
        seem to remember talking, wanderingly, to myself during that last
        spurt. I was also very thirsty, and bitterly regretful I had drunk no
        more water. It is a curious thing that I felt angry with my wife; I
        cannot account for it, but my impotent desire to reach Leatherhead
        worried me excessively.

        I do not clearly remember the arrival of the curate, so that probably
        I dozed. I became aware of him as a seated figure in soot-smudged
        shirt sleeves, and with his upturned, clean-shaven face staring at
        a faint flickering that danced over the sky. The sky was what is
        called a mackerel sky--rows and rows of faint down-plumes of
        cloud, just tinted with the midsummer sunset.

        I sat up, and at the rustle of my motion he looked at me quickly.

        "Have you any water?" I asked abruptly.

        He shook his head.

        "You have been asking for water for the last hour," he said.

        For a moment we were silent, taking stock of each other. I
        dare say he found me a strange enough figure, naked, save for my
        water-soaked trousers and socks, scalded, and my face and shoulders
        blackened by the smoke. His face was a fair weakness, his chin
        retreated, and his hair lay in crisp, almost flaxen curls on his low
        forehead; his eyes were rather large, pale blue, and blankly staring.
        He spoke abruptly, looking vacantly away from me.

        "What does it mean?" he said. "What do these things mean?"

        I stared at him and made no answer.

        He extended a thin white hand and spoke in almost a complaining
        tone.

        "Why are these things permitted? What sins have we done? The
        morning service was over, I was walking through the roads to clear my
        brain for the afternoon, and then--fire, earthquake, death! As if it
        were Sodom and Gomorrah! All our work undone, all the work---- What
        are these Martians?"

        "What are we?" I answered, clearing my throat.

        He gripped his knees and turned to look at me again. For half a
        minute, perhaps, he stared silently.

        "I was walking through the roads to clear my brain," he said. "And
        suddenly--fire, earthquake, death!"

        He relapsed into silence, with his chin now sunken almost to his
        knees.

        Presently he began waving his hand.

        "All the work--all the Sunday schools--What have we done--what has
        Weybridge done? Everything gone--everything destroyed. The church!
        We rebuilt it only three years ago. Gone! Swept out of existence!
        Why?"

        Another pause, and he broke out again like one demented.

        "The smoke of her burning goeth up for ever and ever!" he shouted.

        His eyes flamed, and he pointed a lean finger in the direction of
        Weybridge.

        By this time I was beginning to take his measure. The tremendous
        tragedy in which he had been involved--it was evident he was a
        fugitive from Weybridge--had driven him to the very verge of his
        reason.

        "Are we far from Sunbury?" I said, in a matter-of-fact tone.

        "What are we to do?" he asked. "Are these creatures everywhere?
        Has the earth been given over to them?"

        "Are we far from Sunbury?"

        "Only this morning I officiated at early celebration----"

        "Things have changed," I said, quietly. "You must keep your head.
        There is still hope."

        "Hope!"

        "Yes. Plentiful hope--for all this destruction!"

        I began to explain my view of our position. He listened at first,
        but as I went on the interest dawning in his eyes gave place to their
        former stare, and his regard wandered from me.

        "This must be the beginning of the end," he said, interrupting me.
        "The end! The great and terrible day of the Lord! When men shall
        call upon the mountains and the rocks to fall upon them and hide
        them--hide them from the face of Him that sitteth upon the throne!"

        I began to understand the position. I ceased my laboured
        reasoning, struggled to my feet, and, standing over him, laid my hand
        on his shoulder.

        "Be a man!" said I. "You are scared out of your wits! What good
        is religion if it collapses under calamity? Think of what earthquakes
        and floods, wars and volcanoes, have done before to men! Did you
        think God had exempted Weybridge? He is not an insurance agent."

        For a time he sat in blank silence.

        "But how can we escape?" he asked, suddenly. "They are
        invulnerable, they are pitiless."

        "Neither the one nor, perhaps, the other," I answered. "And the
        mightier they are the more sane and wary should we be. One of them
        was killed yonder not three hours ago."

        "Killed!" he said, staring about him. "How can God's ministers be
        killed?"

        "I saw it happen." I proceeded to tell him. "We have chanced to
        come in for the thick of it," said I, "and that is all."

        "What is that flicker in the sky?" he asked abruptly.

        I told him it was the heliograph signalling--that it was the sign
        of human help and effort in the sky.

        "We are in the midst of it," I said, "quiet as it is. That flicker
        in the sky tells of the gathering storm. Yonder, I take it are the
        Martians, and Londonward, where those hills rise about Richmond and
        Kingston and the trees give cover, earthworks are being thrown up and
        guns are being placed. Presently the Martians will be coming this way
        again."

        And even as I spoke he sprang to his feet and stopped me by a
        gesture.

        "Listen!" he said.

        From beyond the low hills across the water came the dull resonance
        of distant guns and a remote weird crying. Then everything was still.
        A cockchafer came droning over the hedge and past us. High in the
        west the crescent moon hung faint and pale above the smoke of
        Weybridge and Shepperton and the hot, still splendour of the sunset.

        "We had better follow this path," I said, "northward."

        CHAPTER FOURTEEN

        IN LONDON

        My younger brother was in London when the Martians fell at Woking.
        He was a medical student working for an imminent examination, and he
        heard nothing of the arrival until Saturday morning. The morning
        papers on Saturday contained, in addition to lengthy special articles
        on the planet Mars, on life in the planets, and so forth, a brief and
        vaguely worded telegram, all the more striking for its brevity.

        The Martians, alarmed by the approach of a crowd, had killed a
        number of people with a quick-firing gun, so the story ran. The
        telegram concluded with the words: "Formidable as they seem to be, the
        Martians have not moved from the pit into which they have fallen, and,
        indeed, seem incapable of doing so. Probably this is due to the
        relative strength of the earth's gravitational energy." On that last
        text their leader-writer expanded very comfortingly.

        Of course all the students in the crammer's biology class, to which
        my brother went that day, were intensely interested, but there were no
        signs of any unusual excitement in the streets. The afternoon papers
        puffed scraps of news under big headlines. They had nothing to tell
        beyond the movements of troops about the common, and the burning of
        the pine woods between Woking and Weybridge, until eight. Then the
        _St. James's Gazette_, in an extra-special edition, announced the bare
        fact of the interruption of telegraphic communication. This was
        thought to be due to the falling of burning pine trees across the
        line. Nothing more of the fighting was known that night, the night of
        my drive to Leatherhead and back.

        My brother felt no anxiety about us, as he knew from the
        description in the papers that the cylinder was a good two miles from
        my house. He made up his mind to run down that night to me, in order,
        as he says, to see the Things before they were killed. He dispatched
        a telegram, which never reached me, about four o'clock, and spent the
        evening at a music hall.

        In London, also, on Saturday night there was a thunderstorm, and my
        brother reached Waterloo in a cab. On the platform from which the
        midnight train usually starts he learned, after some waiting, that an
        accident prevented trains from reaching Woking that night. The nature
        of the accident he could not ascertain; indeed, the railway
        authorities did not clearly know at that time. There was very little
        excitement in the station, as the officials, failing to realise that
        anything further than a breakdown between Byfleet and Woking junction
        had occurred, were running the theatre trains which usually passed
        through Woking round by Virginia Water or Guildford. They were busy
        making the necessary arrangements to alter the route of the
        Southampton and Portsmouth Sunday League excursions. A nocturnal
        newspaper reporter, mistaking my brother for the traffic manager, to
        whom he bears a slight resemblance, waylaid and tried to interview
        him. Few people, excepting the railway officials, connected the
        breakdown with the Martians.

        I have read, in another account of these events, that on Sunday
        morning "all London was electrified by the news from Woking." As a
        matter of fact, there was nothing to justify that very extravagant
        phrase. Plenty of Londoners did not hear of the Martians until the
        panic of Monday morning. Those who did took some time to realise all
        that the hastily worded telegrams in the Sunday papers conveyed. The
        majority of people in London do not read Sunday papers.

        The habit of personal security, moreover, is so deeply fixed in the
        Londoner's mind, and startling intelligence so much a matter of course
        in the papers, that they could read without any personal tremors:
        "About seven o'clock last night the Martians came out of the cylinder,
        and, moving about under an armour of metallic shields, have completely
        wrecked Woking station with the adjacent houses, and massacred an
        entire battalion of the Cardigan Regiment. No details are known.
        Maxims have been absolutely useless against their armour; the field
        guns have been disabled by them. Flying hussars have been galloping
        into Chertsey. The Martians appear to be moving slowly towards
        Chertsey or Windsor. Great anxiety prevails in West Surrey, and
        earthworks are being thrown up to check the advance Londonward." That
        was how the Sunday _Sun_ put it, and a clever and remarkably prompt
        "handbook" article in the _Referee_ compared the affair to a menagerie
        suddenly let loose in a village.

        No one in London knew positively of the nature of the armoured
        Martians, and there was still a fixed idea that these monsters must be
        sluggish: "crawling," "creeping painfully"--such expressions occurred
        in almost all the earlier reports. None of the telegrams could have
        been written by an eyewitness of their advance. The Sunday papers
        printed separate editions as further news came to hand, some even in
        default of it. But there was practically nothing more to tell people
        until late in the afternoon, when the authorities gave the press
        agencies the news in their possession. It was stated that the people
        of Walton and Weybridge, and all the district were pouring along the
        roads Londonward, and that was all.

        My brother went to church at the Foundling Hospital in the morning,
        still in ignorance of what had happened on the previous night. There
        he heard allusions made to the invasion, and a special prayer for
        peace. Coming out, he bought a _Referee_. He became alarmed at the
        news in this, and went again to Waterloo station to find out if
        communication were restored. The omnibuses, carriages, cyclists, and
        innumerable people walking in their best clothes seemed scarcely
        affected by the strange intelligence that the news venders were
        disseminating. People were interested, or, if alarmed, alarmed only
        on account of the local residents. At the station he heard for the
        first time that the Windsor and Chertsey lines were now interrupted.
        The porters told him that several remarkable telegrams had been
        received in the morning from Byfleet and Chertsey stations, but that
        these had abruptly ceased. My brother could get very little precise
        detail out of them.

        "There's fighting going on about Weybridge" was the extent of their
        information.

        The train service was now very much disorganised. Quite a number
        of people who had been expecting friends from places on the
        South-Western network were standing about the station. One
        grey-headed old gentleman came and abused the South-Western Company
        bitterly to my brother. "It wants showing up," he said.

        One or two trains came in from Richmond, Putney, and Kingston,
        containing people who had gone out for a day's boating and found the
        locks closed and a feeling of panic in the air. A man in a blue and
        white blazer addressed my brother, full of strange tidings.

        "There's hosts of people driving into Kingston in traps and carts
        and things, with boxes of valuables and all that," he said. "They
        come from Molesey and Weybridge and Walton, and they say there's been
        guns heard at Chertsey, heavy firing, and that mounted soldiers have
        told them to get off at once because the Martians are coming. We
        heard guns firing at Hampton Court station, but we thought it was
        thunder. What the dickens does it all mean? The Martians can't get
        out of their pit, can they?"

        My brother could not tell him.

        Afterwards he found that the vague feeling of alarm had spread to
        the clients of the underground railway, and that the Sunday
        excursionists began to return from all over the South-Western
        "lung"--Barnes, Wimbledon, Richmond Park, Kew, and so forth--at
        unnaturally early hours; but not a soul had anything more than vague
        hearsay to tell of. Everyone connected with the terminus seemed
        ill-tempered.

        About five o'clock the gathering crowd in the station was immensely
        excited by the opening of the line of communication, which is almost
        invariably closed, between the South-Eastern and the South-Western
        stations, and the passage of carriage trucks bearing huge guns and
        carriages crammed with soldiers. These were the guns that were
        brought up from Woolwich and Chatham to cover Kingston. There was
        an exchange of pleasantries: "You'll get eaten!" "We're the
        beast-tamers!" and so forth. A little while after that a squad of
        police came into the station and began to clear the public off the
        platforms, and my brother went out into the street again.

        The church bells were ringing for evensong, and a squad of
        Salvation Army lassies came singing down Waterloo Road. On the bridge
        a number of loafers were watching a curious brown scum that came
        drifting down the stream in patches. The sun was just setting, and the
        Clock Tower and the Houses of Parliament rose against one of the most
        peaceful skies it is possible to imagine, a sky of gold, barred with
        long transverse stripes of reddish-purple cloud. There was talk of a
        floating body. One of the men there, a reservist he said he was, told
        my brother he had seen the heliograph flickering in the west.

        In Wellington Street my brother met a couple of sturdy roughs who
        had just been rushed out of Fleet Street with still-wet newspapers and
        staring placards. "Dreadful catastrophe!" they bawled one to the
        other down Wellington Street. "Fighting at Weybridge! Full
        description! Repulse of the Martians! London in Danger!" He had to
        give threepence for a copy of that paper.

        Then it was, and then only, that he realised something of the full
        power and terror of these monsters. He learned that they were not
        merely a handful of small sluggish creatures, but that they were minds
        swaying vast mechanical bodies; and that they could move swiftly and
        smite with such power that even the mightiest guns could not stand
        against them.

        They were described as "vast spiderlike machines, nearly a hundred
        feet high, capable of the speed of an express train, and able to shoot
        out a beam of intense heat." Masked batteries, chiefly of field guns,
        had been planted in the country about Horsell Common, and especially
        between the Woking district and London. Five of the machines had been
        seen moving towards the Thames, and one, by a happy chance, had been
        destroyed. In the other cases the shells had missed, and the
        batteries had been at once annihilated by the Heat-Rays. Heavy
        losses of soldiers were mentioned, but the tone of the dispatch was
        optimistic.

        The Martians had been repulsed; they were not invulnerable. They
        had retreated to their triangle of cylinders again, in the circle
        about Woking. Signallers with heliographs were pushing forward upon
        them from all sides. Guns were in rapid transit from Windsor,
        Portsmouth, Aldershot, Woolwich--even from the north; among others,
        long wire-guns of ninety-five tons from Woolwich. Altogether one
        hundred and sixteen were in position or being hastily placed, chiefly
        covering London. Never before in England had there been such a vast
        or rapid concentration of military material.

        Any further cylinders that fell, it was hoped, could be destroyed
        at once by high explosives, which were being rapidly manufactured and
        distributed. No doubt, ran the report, the situation was of the
        strangest and gravest description, but the public was exhorted to
        avoid and discourage panic. No doubt the Martians were strange and
        terrible in the extreme, but at the outside there could not be more
        than twenty of them against our millions.

        The authorities had reason to suppose, from the size of the
        cylinders, that at the outside there could not be more than five in
        each cylinder--fifteen altogether. And one at least was disposed
        of--perhaps more. The public would be fairly warned of the approach
        of danger, and elaborate measures were being taken for the protection
        of the people in the threatened southwestern suburbs. And so, with
        reiterated assurances of the safety of London and the ability of the
        authorities to cope with the difficulty, this quasi-proclamation
        closed.

        This was printed in enormous type on paper so fresh that it was
        still wet, and there had been no time to add a word of comment. It
        was curious, my brother said, to see how ruthlessly the usual contents
        of the paper had been hacked and taken out to give this place.

        All down Wellington Street people could be seen fluttering out the
        pink sheets and reading, and the Strand was suddenly noisy with the
        voices of an army of hawkers following these pioneers. Men came
        scrambling off buses to secure copies. Certainly this news excited
        people intensely, whatever their previous apathy. The shutters of a
        map shop in the Strand were being taken down, my brother said, and a
        man in his Sunday raiment, lemon-yellow gloves even, was visible
        inside the window hastily fastening maps of Surrey to the glass.

        Going on along the Strand to Trafalgar Square, the paper in his
        hand, my brother saw some of the fugitives from West Surrey. There
        was a man with his wife and two boys and some articles of furniture in
        a cart such as greengrocers use. He was driving from the direction of
        Westminster Bridge; and close behind him came a hay waggon with five
        or six respectable-looking people in it, and some boxes and bundles.
        The faces of these people were haggard, and their entire appearance
        contrasted conspicuously with the Sabbath-best appearance of the
        people on the omnibuses. People in fashionable clothing peeped at
        them out of cabs. They stopped at the Square as if undecided which
        way to take, and finally turned eastward along the Strand. Some way
        behind these came a man in workday clothes, riding one of those
        old-fashioned tricycles with a small front wheel. He was dirty and
        white in the face.

        My brother turned down towards Victoria, and met a number of such
        people. He had a vague idea that he might see something of me. He
        noticed an unusual number of police regulating the traffic. Some of
        the refugees were exchanging news with the people on the omnibuses.
        One was professing to have seen the Martians. "Boilers on stilts, I
        tell you, striding along like men." Most of them were excited and
        animated by their strange experience.

        Beyond Victoria the public-houses were doing a lively trade with
        these arrivals. At all the street corners groups of people were
        reading papers, talking excitedly, or staring at these unusual Sunday
        visitors. They seemed to increase as night drew on, until at last the
        roads, my brother said, were like Epsom High Street on a Derby Day. My
        brother addressed several of these fugitives and got unsatisfactory
        answers from most.

        None of them could tell him any news of Woking except one man, who
        assured him that Woking had been entirely destroyed on the previous
        night.

        "I come from Byfleet," he said; "man on a bicycle came through the
        place in the early morning, and ran from door to door warning us to
        come away. Then came soldiers. We went out to look, and there were
        clouds of smoke to the south--nothing but smoke, and not a soul coming
        that way. Then we heard the guns at Chertsey, and folks coming from
        Weybridge. So I've locked up my house and come on."

        At the time there was a strong feeling in the streets that the
        authorities were to blame for their incapacity to dispose of the
        invaders without all this inconvenience.

        About eight o'clock a noise of heavy firing was distinctly audible
        all over the south of London. My brother could not hear it for the
        traffic in the main thoroughfares, but by striking through the quiet
        back streets to the river he was able to distinguish it quite plainly.

        He walked from Westminster to his apartments near Regent's Park,
        about two. He was now very anxious on my account, and disturbed at
        the evident magnitude of the trouble. His mind was inclined to run,
        even as mine had run on Saturday, on military details. He thought of
        all those silent, expectant guns, of the suddenly nomadic countryside;
        he tried to imagine "boilers on stilts" a hundred feet high.

        There were one or two cartloads of refugees passing along Oxford
        Street, and several in the Marylebone Road, but so slowly was the news
        spreading that Regent Street and Portland Place were full of their
        usual Sunday-night promenaders, albeit they talked in groups, and
        along the edge of Regent's Park there were as many silent couples
        "walking out" together under the scattered gas lamps as ever there had
        been. The night was warm and still, and a little oppressive; the
        sound of guns continued intermittently, and after midnight there
        seemed to be sheet lightning in the south.

        He read and re-read the paper, fearing the worst had happened to me.
        He was restless, and after supper prowled out again aimlessly. He
        returned and tried in vain to divert his attention to his examination
        notes. He went to bed a little after midnight, and was awakened from
        lurid dreams in the small hours of Monday by the sound of door
        knockers, feet running in the street, distant drumming, and a clamour
        of bells. Red reflections danced on the ceiling. For a moment he lay
        astonished, wondering whether day had come or the world gone mad.
        Then he jumped out of bed and ran to the window.

        His room was an attic and as he thrust his head out, up and down
        the street there were a dozen echoes to the noise of his window sash,
        and heads in every kind of night disarray appeared. Enquiries were
        being shouted. "They are coming!" bawled a policeman, hammering at
        the door; "the Martians are coming!" and hurried to the next door.

        The sound of drumming and trumpeting came from the Albany Street
        Barracks, and every church within earshot was hard at work killing
        sleep with a vehement disorderly tocsin. There was a noise of doors
        opening, and window after window in the houses opposite flashed from
        darkness into yellow illumination.

        Up the street came galloping a closed carriage, bursting abruptly
        into noise at the corner, rising to a clattering climax under the
        window, and dying away slowly in the distance. Close on the rear of
        this came a couple of cabs, the forerunners of a long procession of
        flying vehicles, going for the most part to Chalk Farm station, where
        the North-Western special trains were loading up, instead of coming
        down the gradient into Euston.

        For a long time my brother stared out of the window in blank
        astonishment, watching the policemen hammering at door after door, and
        delivering their incomprehensible message. Then the door behind him
        opened, and the man who lodged across the landing came in, dressed
        only in shirt, trousers, and slippers, his braces loose about his
        waist, his hair disordered from his pillow.

        "What the devil is it?" he asked. "A fire? What a devil of a
        row!"

        They both craned their heads out of the window, straining to hear
        what the policemen were shouting. People were coming out of the side
        streets, and standing in groups at the corners talking.

        "What the devil is it all about?" said my brother's fellow lodger.

        My brother answered him vaguely and began to dress, running with
        each garment to the window in order to miss nothing of the growing
        excitement. And presently men selling unnaturally early newspapers
        came bawling into the street:

        "London in danger of suffocation! The Kingston and Richmond
        defences forced! Fearful massacres in the Thames Valley!"

        And all about him--in the rooms below, in the houses on each side
        and across the road, and behind in the Park Terraces and in the
        hundred other streets of that part of Marylebone, and the Westbourne
        Park district and St. Pancras, and westward and northward in Kilburn
        and St. John's Wood and Hampstead, and eastward in Shoreditch and
        Highbury and Haggerston and Hoxton, and, indeed, through all the
        vastness of London from Ealing to East Ham--people were rubbing their
        eyes, and opening windows to stare out and ask aimless questions,
        dressing hastily as the first breath of the coming storm of Fear blew
        through the streets. It was the dawn of the great panic. London,
        which had gone to bed on Sunday night oblivious and inert, was
        awakened, in the small hours of Monday morning, to a vivid sense of
        danger.

        Unable from his window to learn what was happening, my brother went
        down and out into the street, just as the sky between the parapets of
        the houses grew pink with the early dawn. The flying people on foot
        and in vehicles grew more numerous every moment. "Black Smoke!" he
        heard people crying, and again "Black Smoke!" The contagion of such
        a unanimous fear was inevitable. As my brother hesitated on the
        door-step, he saw another news vender approaching, and got a paper
        forthwith. The man was running away with the rest, and selling his
        papers for a shilling each as he ran--a grotesque mingling of profit
        and panic.

        And from this paper my brother read that catastrophic dispatch of
        the Commander-in-Chief:

        "The Martians are able to discharge enormous clouds of a black and
        poisonous vapour by means of rockets. They have smothered our
        batteries, destroyed Richmond, Kingston, and Wimbledon, and are
        advancing slowly towards London, destroying everything on the way. It
        is impossible to stop them. There is no safety from the Black Smoke
        but in instant flight."

        That was all, but it was enough. The whole population of the great
        six-million city was stirring, slipping, running; presently it would
        be pouring _en masse_ northward.

        "Black Smoke!" the voices cried. "Fire!"

        The bells of the neighbouring church made a jangling tumult, a cart
        carelessly driven smashed, amid shrieks and curses, against the water
        trough up the street. Sickly yellow lights went to and fro in the
        houses, and some of the passing cabs flaunted unextinguished lamps.
        And overhead the dawn was growing brighter, clear and steady and calm.

        He heard footsteps running to and fro in the rooms, and up and down
        stairs behind him. His landlady came to the door, loosely wrapped in
        dressing gown and shawl; her husband followed ejaculating.

        As my brother began to realise the import of all these things, he
        turned hastily to his own room, put all his available money--some ten
        pounds altogether--into his pockets, and went out again into the
        streets.

        CHAPTER FIFTEEN

        WHAT HAD HAPPENED IN SURREY

        It was while the curate had sat and talked so wildly to me under
        the hedge in the flat meadows near Halliford, and while my brother was
        watching the fugitives stream over Westminster Bridge, that the
        Martians had resumed the offensive. So far as one can ascertain from
        the conflicting accounts that have been put forth, the majority of
        them remained busied with preparations in the Horsell pit until nine
        that night, hurrying on some operation that disengaged huge volumes of
        green smoke.

        But three certainly came out about eight o'clock and, advancing
        slowly and cautiously, made their way through Byfleet and Pyrford
        towards Ripley and Weybridge, and so came in sight of the expectant
        batteries against the setting sun. These Martians did not advance in
        a body, but in a line, each perhaps a mile and a half from his nearest
        fellow. They communicated with one another by means of sirenlike
        howls, running up and down the scale from one note to another.

        It was this howling and firing of the guns at Ripley and St.
        George's Hill that we had heard at Upper Halliford. The Ripley
        gunners, unseasoned artillery volunteers who ought never to have been
        placed in such a position, fired one wild, premature, ineffectual
        volley, and bolted on horse and foot through the deserted village,
        while the Martian, without using his Heat-Ray, walked serenely over
        their guns, stepped gingerly among them, passed in front of them, and
        so came unexpectedly upon the guns in Painshill Park, which he
        destroyed.

        The St. George's Hill men, however, were better led or of a better
        mettle. Hidden by a pine wood as they were, they seem to have been
        quite unsuspected by the Martian nearest to them. They laid their
        guns as deliberately as if they had been on parade, and fired at about
        a thousand yards' range.

        The shells flashed all round him, and he was seen to advance a few
        paces, stagger, and go down. Everybody yelled together, and the guns
        were reloaded in frantic haste. The overthrown Martian set up a
        prolonged ululation, and immediately a second glittering giant,
        answering him, appeared over the trees to the south. It would seem
        that a leg of the tripod had been smashed by one of the shells. The
        whole of the second volley flew wide of the Martian on the ground,
        and, simultaneously, both his companions brought their Heat-Rays to
        bear on the battery. The ammunition blew up, the pine trees all about
        the guns flashed into fire, and only one or two of the men who were
        already running over the crest of the hill escaped.

        After this it would seem that the three took counsel together and
        halted, and the scouts who were watching them report that they
        remained absolutely stationary for the next half hour. The Martian
        who had been overthrown crawled tediously out of his hood, a small
        brown figure, oddly suggestive from that distance of a speck of
        blight, and apparently engaged in the repair of his support. About
        nine he had finished, for his cowl was then seen above the trees
        again.

        It was a few minutes past nine that night when these three
        sentinels were joined by four other Martians, each carrying a thick
        black tube. A similar tube was handed to each of the three, and the
        seven proceeded to distribute themselves at equal distances along a
        curved line between St. George's Hill, Weybridge, and the village of
        Send, southwest of Ripley.

        A dozen rockets sprang out of the hills before them so soon as they
        began to move, and warned the waiting batteries about Ditton and
        Esher. At the same time four of their fighting machines, similarly
        armed with tubes, crossed the river, and two of them, black against
        the western sky, came into sight of myself and the curate as we
        hurried wearily and painfully along the road that runs northward out
        of Halliford. They moved, as it seemed to us, upon a cloud, for a
        milky mist covered the fields and rose to a third of their height.

        At this sight the curate cried faintly in his throat, and began
        running; but I knew it was no good running from a Martian, and I
        turned aside and crawled through dewy nettles and brambles into the
        broad ditch by the side of the road. He looked back, saw what I was
        doing, and turned to join me.

        The two halted, the nearer to us standing and facing Sunbury, the
        remoter being a grey indistinctness towards the evening star, away
        towards Staines.

        The occasional howling of the Martians had ceased; they took up
        their positions in the huge crescent about their cylinders in absolute
        silence. It was a crescent with twelve miles between its horns. Never
        since the devising of gunpowder was the beginning of a battle so
        still. To us and to an observer about Ripley it would have had
        precisely the same effect--the Martians seemed in solitary possession
        of the darkling night, lit only as it was by the slender moon, the
        stars, the afterglow of the daylight, and the ruddy glare from St.
        George's Hill and the woods of Painshill.

        But facing that crescent everywhere--at Staines, Hounslow, Ditton,
        Esher, Ockham, behind hills and woods south of the river, and across
        the flat grass meadows to the north of it, wherever a cluster of trees
        or village houses gave sufficient cover--the guns were waiting. The
        signal rockets burst and rained their sparks through the night and
        vanished, and the spirit of all those watching batteries rose to a
        tense expectation. The Martians had but to advance into the line of
        fire, and instantly those motionless black forms of men, those guns
        glittering so darkly in the early night, would explode into a
        thunderous fury of battle.

        No doubt the thought that was uppermost in a thousand of those
        vigilant minds, even as it was uppermost in mine, was the riddle--how
        much they understood of us. Did they grasp that we in our millions
        were organized, disciplined, working together? Or did they interpret
        our spurts of fire, the sudden stinging of our shells, our steady
        investment of their encampment, as we should the furious unanimity of
        onslaught in a disturbed hive of bees? Did they dream they might
        exterminate us? (At that time no one knew what food they needed.) A
        hundred such questions struggled together in my mind as I watched that
        vast sentinel shape. And in the back of my mind was the sense of all
        the huge unknown and hidden forces Londonward. Had they prepared
        pitfalls? Were the powder mills at Hounslow ready as a snare? Would
        the Londoners have the heart and courage to make a greater Moscow of
        their mighty province of houses?

        Then, after an interminable time, as it seemed to us, crouching and
        peering through the hedge, came a sound like the distant concussion of
        a gun. Another nearer, and then another. And then the Martian beside
        us raised his tube on high and discharged it, gunwise, with a heavy
        report that made the ground heave. The one towards Staines answered
        him. There was no flash, no smoke, simply that loaded detonation.

        I was so excited by these heavy minute-guns following one another
        that I so far forgot my personal safety and my scalded hands as to
        clamber up into the hedge and stare towards Sunbury. As I did so a
        second report followed, and a big projectile hurtled overhead towards
        Hounslow. I expected at least to see smoke or fire, or some such
        evidence of its work. But all I saw was the deep blue sky above, with
        one solitary star, and the white mist spreading wide and low beneath.
        And there had been no crash, no answering explosion. The silence was
        restored; the minute lengthened to three.

        "What has happened?" said the curate, standing up beside me.

        "Heaven knows!" said I.

        A bat flickered by and vanished. A distant tumult of shouting
        began and ceased. I looked again at the Martian, and saw he was now
        moving eastward along the riverbank, with a swift, rolling motion.

        Every moment I expected the fire of some hidden battery to spring
        upon him; but the evening calm was unbroken. The figure of the Martian
        grew smaller as he receded, and presently the mist and the gathering
        night had swallowed him up. By a common impulse we clambered higher.
        Towards Sunbury was a dark appearance, as though a conical hill had
        suddenly come into being there, hiding our view of the farther
        country; and then, remoter across the river, over Walton, we saw
        another such summit. These hill-like forms grew lower and broader
        even as we stared.

        Moved by a sudden thought, I looked northward, and there I
        perceived a third of these cloudy black kopjes had risen.

        Everything had suddenly become very still. Far away to the
        southeast, marking the quiet, we heard the Martians hooting to one
        another, and then the air quivered again with the distant thud of
        their guns. But the earthly artillery made no reply.

        Now at the time we could not understand these things, but later I
        was to learn the meaning of these ominous kopjes that gathered in the
        twilight. Each of the Martians, standing in the great crescent I have
        described, had discharged, by means of the gunlike tube he carried, a
        huge canister over whatever hill, copse, cluster of houses, or other
        possible cover for guns, chanced to be in front of him. Some fired
        only one of these, some two--as in the case of the one we had seen;
        the one at Ripley is said to have discharged no fewer than five at
        that time. These canisters smashed on striking the ground--they did
        not explode--and incontinently disengaged an enormous volume of heavy,
        inky vapour, coiling and pouring upward in a huge and ebony cumulus
        cloud, a gaseous hill that sank and spread itself slowly over the
        surrounding country. And the touch of that vapour, the inhaling of
        its pungent wisps, was death to all that breathes.

        It was heavy, this vapour, heavier than the densest smoke, so that,
        after the first tumultuous uprush and outflow of its impact, it sank
        down through the air and poured over the ground in a manner rather
        liquid than gaseous, abandoning the hills, and streaming into the
        valleys and ditches and watercourses even as I have heard the
        carbonic-acid gas that pours from volcanic clefts is wont to do. And
        where it came upon water some chemical action occurred, and the
        surface would be instantly covered with a powdery scum that sank
        slowly and made way for more. The scum was absolutely insoluble, and
        it is a strange thing, seeing the instant effect of the gas, that one
        could drink without hurt the water from which it had been strained.
        The vapour did not diffuse as a true gas would do. It hung together
        in banks, flowing sluggishly down the slope of the land and driving
        reluctantly before the wind, and very slowly it combined with the mist
        and moisture of the air, and sank to the earth in the form of dust.
        Save that an unknown element giving a group of four lines in the blue
        of the spectrum is concerned, we are still entirely ignorant of the
        nature of this substance.

        Once the tumultuous upheaval of its dispersion was over, the black
        smoke clung so closely to the ground, even before its precipitation,
        that fifty feet up in the air, on the roofs and upper stories of high
        houses and on great trees, there was a chance of escaping its poison
        altogether, as was proved even that night at Street Cobham and Ditton.

        The man who escaped at the former place tells a wonderful story of
        the strangeness of its coiling flow, and how he looked down from the
        church spire and saw the houses of the village rising like ghosts out
        of its inky nothingness. For a day and a half he remained there,
        weary, starving and sun-scorched, the earth under the blue sky and
        against the prospect of the distant hills a velvet-black expanse, with
        red roofs, green trees, and, later, black-veiled shrubs and gates,
        barns, outhouses, and walls, rising here and there into the sunlight.

        But that was at Street Cobham, where the black vapour was allowed
        to remain until it sank of its own accord into the ground. As a rule
        the Martians, when it had served its purpose, cleared the air of it
        again by wading into it and directing a jet of steam upon it.

        This they did with the vapour banks near us, as we saw in the
        starlight from the window of a deserted house at Upper Halliford,
        whither we had returned. From there we could see the searchlights on
        Richmond Hill and Kingston Hill going to and fro, and about eleven the
        windows rattled, and we heard the sound of the huge siege guns that
        had been put in position there. These continued intermittently for
        the space of a quarter of an hour, sending chance shots at the
        invisible Martians at Hampton and Ditton, and then the pale beams of
        the electric light vanished, and were replaced by a bright red glow.

        Then the fourth cylinder fell--a brilliant green meteor--as I
        learned afterwards, in Bushey Park. Before the guns on the Richmond
        and Kingston line of hills began, there was a fitful cannonade far
        away in the southwest, due, I believe, to guns being fired haphazard
        before the black vapour could overwhelm the gunners.

        So, setting about it as methodically as men might smoke out a
        wasps' nest, the Martians spread this strange stifling vapour over the
        Londonward country. The horns of the crescent slowly moved apart,
        until at last they formed a line from Hanwell to Coombe and Malden.
        All night through their destructive tubes advanced. Never once, after
        the Martian at St. George's Hill was brought down, did they give the
        artillery the ghost of a chance against them. Wherever there was a
        possibility of guns being laid for them unseen, a fresh canister of
        the black vapour was discharged, and where the guns were openly
        displayed the Heat-Ray was brought to bear.

        By midnight the blazing trees along the slopes of Richmond Park and
        the glare of Kingston Hill threw their light upon a network of black
        smoke, blotting out the whole valley of the Thames and extending as
        far as the eye could reach. And through this two Martians slowly
        waded, and turned their hissing steam jets this way and that.

        They were sparing of the Heat-Ray that night, either because they
        had but a limited supply of material for its production or because
        they did not wish to destroy the country but only to crush and overawe
        the opposition they had aroused. In the latter aim they certainly
        succeeded. Sunday night was the end of the organised opposition to
        their movements. After that no body of men would stand against them,
        so hopeless was the enterprise. Even the crews of the torpedo-boats
        and destroyers that had brought their quick-firers up the Thames
        refused to stop, mutinied, and went down again. The only offensive
        operation men ventured upon after that night was the preparation of
        mines and pitfalls, and even in that their energies were frantic and
        spasmodic.

        One has to imagine, as well as one may, the fate of those batteries
        towards Esher, waiting so tensely in the twilight. Survivors there
        were none. One may picture the orderly expectation, the officers
        alert and watchful, the gunners ready, the ammunition piled to hand,
        the limber gunners with their horses and waggons, the groups of
        civilian spectators standing as near as they were permitted, the
        evening stillness, the ambulances and hospital tents with the burned
        and wounded from Weybridge; then the dull resonance of the shots the
        Martians fired, and the clumsy projectile whirling over the trees and
        houses and smashing amid the neighbouring fields.

        One may picture, too, the sudden shifting of the attention, the
        swiftly spreading coils and bellyings of that blackness advancing
        headlong, towering heavenward, turning the twilight to a palpable
        darkness, a strange and horrible antagonist of vapour striding upon
        its victims, men and horses near it seen dimly, running, shrieking,
        falling headlong, shouts of dismay, the guns suddenly abandoned, men
        choking and writhing on the ground, and the swift broadening-out of
        the opaque cone of smoke. And then night and extinction--nothing but
        a silent mass of impenetrable vapour hiding its dead.

        Before dawn the black vapour was pouring through the streets of
        Richmond, and the disintegrating organism of government was, with a
        last expiring effort, rousing the population of London to the
        necessity of flight.

        CHAPTER SIXTEEN

        THE EXODUS FROM LONDON

        So you understand the roaring wave of fear that swept through the
        greatest city in the world just as Monday was dawning--the stream of
        flight rising swiftly to a torrent, lashing in a foaming tumult round
        the railway stations, banked up into a horrible struggle about the
        shipping in the Thames, and hurrying by every available channel
        northward and eastward. By ten o'clock the police organisation, and
        by midday even the railway organisations, were losing coherency,
        losing shape and efficiency, guttering, softening, running at last in
        that swift liquefaction of the social body.

        All the railway lines north of the Thames and the South-Eastern
        people at Cannon Street had been warned by midnight on Sunday, and
        trains were being filled. People were fighting savagely for
        standing-room in the carriages even at two o'clock. By three, people
        were being trampled and crushed even in Bishopsgate Street, a couple
        of hundred yards or more from Liverpool Street station; revolvers were
        fired, people stabbed, and the policemen who had been sent to direct
        the traffic, exhausted and infuriated, were breaking the heads of the
        people they were called out to protect.

        And as the day advanced and the engine drivers and stokers refused
        to return to London, the pressure of the flight drove the people in an
        ever-thickening multitude away from the stations and along the
        northward-running roads. By midday a Martian had been seen at Barnes,
        and a cloud of slowly sinking black vapour drove along the Thames and
        across the flats of Lambeth, cutting off all escape over the bridges
        in its sluggish advance. Another bank drove over Ealing, and
        surrounded a little island of survivors on Castle Hill, alive, but
        unable to escape.

        After a fruitless struggle to get aboard a North-Western train at
        Chalk Farm--the engines of the trains that had loaded in the goods
        yard there _ploughed_ through shrieking people, and a dozen stalwart men
        fought to keep the crowd from crushing the driver against his
        furnace--my brother emerged upon the Chalk Farm road, dodged across
        through a hurrying swarm of vehicles, and had the luck to be foremost
        in the sack of a cycle shop. The front tire of the machine he got was
        punctured in dragging it through the window, but he got up and off,
        notwithstanding, with no further injury than a cut wrist. The steep
        foot of Haverstock Hill was impassable owing to several overturned
        horses, and my brother struck into Belsize Road.

        So he got out of the fury of the panic, and, skirting the Edgware
        Road, reached Edgware about seven, fasting and wearied, but well ahead
        of the crowd. Along the road people were standing in the roadway,
        curious, wondering. He was passed by a number of cyclists, some
        horsemen, and two motor cars. A mile from Edgware the rim of the
        wheel broke, and the machine became unridable. He left it by the
        roadside and trudged through the village. There were shops half
        opened in the main street of the place, and people crowded on the
        pavement and in the doorways and windows, staring astonished at this
        extraordinary procession of fugitives that was beginning. He
        succeeded in getting some food at an inn.

        For a time he remained in Edgware not knowing what next to do. The
        flying people increased in number. Many of them, like my brother,
        seemed inclined to loiter in the place. There was no fresh news of
        the invaders from Mars.

        At that time the road was crowded, but as yet far from congested.
        Most of the fugitives at that hour were mounted on cycles, but there
        were soon motor cars, hansom cabs, and carriages hurrying along, and
        the dust hung in heavy clouds along the road to St. Albans.

        It was perhaps a vague idea of making his way to Chelmsford, where
        some friends of his lived, that at last induced my brother to strike
        into a quiet lane running eastward. Presently he came upon a stile,
        and, crossing it, followed a footpath northeastward. He passed near
        several farmhouses and some little places whose names he did not
        learn. He saw few fugitives until, in a grass lane towards High
        Barnet, he happened upon two ladies who became his fellow travellers.
        He came upon them just in time to save them.

        He heard their screams, and, hurrying round the corner, saw a
        couple of men struggling to drag them out of the little pony-chaise in
        which they had been driving, while a third with difficulty held the
        frightened pony's head. One of the ladies, a short woman dressed in
        white, was simply screaming; the other, a dark, slender figure,
        slashed at the man who gripped her arm with a whip she held in her
        disengaged hand.

        My brother immediately grasped the situation, shouted, and hurried
        towards the struggle. One of the men desisted and turned towards him,
        and my brother, realising from his antagonist's face that a fight was
        unavoidable, and being an expert boxer, went into him forthwith and
        sent him down against the wheel of the chaise.

        It was no time for pugilistic chivalry and my brother laid him
        quiet with a kick, and gripped the collar of the man who pulled at the
        slender lady's arm. He heard the clatter of hoofs, the whip stung
        across his face, a third antagonist struck him between the eyes, and
        the man he held wrenched himself free and made off down the lane in
        the direction from which he had come.

        Partly stunned, he found himself facing the man who had held the
        horse's head, and became aware of the chaise receding from him down
        the lane, swaying from side to side, and with the women in it looking
        back. The man before him, a burly rough, tried to close, and he
        stopped him with a blow in the face. Then, realising that he was
        deserted, he dodged round and made off down the lane after the chaise,
        with the sturdy man close behind him, and the fugitive, who had turned
        now, following remotely.

        Suddenly he stumbled and fell; his immediate pursuer went headlong,
        and he rose to his feet to find himself with a couple of antagonists
        again. He would have had little chance against them had not the
        slender lady very pluckily pulled up and returned to his help. It
        seems she had had a revolver all this time, but it had been under the
        seat when she and her companion were attacked. She fired at six
        yards' distance, narrowly missing my brother. The less courageous of
        the robbers made off, and his companion followed him, cursing his
        cowardice. They both stopped in sight down the lane, where the third
        man lay insensible.

        "Take this!" said the slender lady, and she gave my brother her
        revolver.

        "Go back to the chaise," said my brother, wiping the blood from his
        split lip.

        She turned without a word--they were both panting--and they went
        back to where the lady in white struggled to hold back the frightened
        pony.

        The robbers had evidently had enough of it. When my brother looked
        again they were retreating.

        "I'll sit here," said my brother, "if I may"; and he got upon the
        empty front seat. The lady looked over her shoulder.

        "Give me the reins," she said, and laid the whip along the pony's
        side. In another moment a bend in the road hid the three men from my
        brother's eyes.

        So, quite unexpectedly, my brother found himself, panting, with a
        cut mouth, a bruised jaw, and bloodstained knuckles, driving along an
        unknown lane with these two women.

        He learned they were the wife and the younger sister of a surgeon
        living at Stanmore, who had come in the small hours from a dangerous
        case at Pinner, and heard at some railway station on his way of the
        Martian advance. He had hurried home, roused the women--their servant
        had left them two days before--packed some provisions, put his
        revolver under the seat--luckily for my brother--and told them to
        drive on to Edgware, with the idea of getting a train there. He
        stopped behind to tell the neighbours. He would overtake them, he
        said, at about half past four in the morning, and now it was nearly
        nine and they had seen nothing of him. They could not stop in Edgware
        because of the growing traffic through the place, and so they had come
        into this side lane.

        That was the story they told my brother in fragments when presently
        they stopped again, nearer to New Barnet. He promised to stay with
        them, at least until they could determine what to do, or until the
        missing man arrived, and professed to be an expert shot with the
        revolver--a weapon strange to him--in order to give them confidence.

        They made a sort of encampment by the wayside, and the pony became
        happy in the hedge. He told them of his own escape out of London, and
        all that he knew of these Martians and their ways. The sun crept
        higher in the sky, and after a time their talk died out and gave place
        to an uneasy state of anticipation. Several wayfarers came along the
        lane, and of these my brother gathered such news as he could. Every
        broken answer he had deepened his impression of the great disaster
        that had come on humanity, deepened his persuasion of the immediate
        necessity for prosecuting this flight. He urged the matter upon them.

        "We have money," said the slender woman, and hesitated.

        Her eyes met my brother's, and her hesitation ended.

        "So have I," said my brother.

        She explained that they had as much as thirty pounds in gold,
        besides a five-pound note, and suggested that with that they might get
        upon a train at St. Albans or New Barnet. My brother thought that was
        hopeless, seeing the fury of the Londoners to crowd upon the trains,
        and broached his own idea of striking across Essex towards Harwich and
        thence escaping from the country altogether.

        Mrs. Elphinstone--that was the name of the woman in white--would
        listen to no reasoning, and kept calling upon "George"; but her
        sister-in-law was astonishingly quiet and deliberate, and at last
        agreed to my brother's suggestion. So, designing to cross the Great
        North Road, they went on towards Barnet, my brother leading the pony
        to save it as much as possible. As the sun crept up the sky the day
        became excessively hot, and under foot a thick, whitish sand grew
        burning and blinding, so that they travelled only very slowly. The
        hedges were grey with dust. And as they advanced towards Barnet a
        tumultuous murmuring grew stronger.

        They began to meet more people. For the most part these were
        staring before them, murmuring indistinct questions, jaded, haggard,
        unclean. One man in evening dress passed them on foot, his eyes on
        the ground. They heard his voice, and, looking back at him, saw one
        hand clutched in his hair and the other beating invisible things. His
        paroxysm of rage over, he went on his way without once looking back.

        As my brother's party went on towards the crossroads to the south
        of Barnet they saw a woman approaching the road across some fields on
        their left, carrying a child and with two other children; and then
        passed a man in dirty black, with a thick stick in one hand and a
        small portmanteau in the other. Then round the corner of the lane,
        from between the villas that guarded it at its confluence with the
        high road, came a little cart drawn by a sweating black pony and
        driven by a sallow youth in a bowler hat, grey with dust. There were
        three girls, East End factory girls, and a couple of little children
        crowded in the cart.

        "This'll tike us rahnd Edgware?" asked the driver, wild-eyed,
        white-faced; and when my brother told him it would if he turned to the
        left, he whipped up at once without the formality of thanks.

        My brother noticed a pale grey smoke or haze rising among the
        houses in front of them, and veiling the white facade of a terrace
        beyond the road that appeared between the backs of the villas. Mrs.
        Elphinstone suddenly cried out at a number of tongues of smoky red
        flame leaping up above the houses in front of them against the hot,
        blue sky. The tumultuous noise resolved itself now into the
        disorderly mingling of many voices, the gride of many wheels, the
        creaking of waggons, and the staccato of hoofs. The lane came round
        sharply not fifty yards from the crossroads.

        "Good heavens!" cried Mrs. Elphinstone. "What is this you are
        driving us into?"

        My brother stopped.

        For the main road was a boiling stream of people, a torrent of
        human beings rushing northward, one pressing on another. A great bank
        of dust, white and luminous in the blaze of the sun, made everything
        within twenty feet of the ground grey and indistinct and was
        perpetually renewed by the hurrying feet of a dense crowd of horses
        and of men and women on foot, and by the wheels of vehicles of every
        description.

        "Way!" my brother heard voices crying. "Make way!"

        It was like riding into the smoke of a fire to approach the meeting
        point of the lane and road; the crowd roared like a fire, and the dust
        was hot and pungent. And, indeed, a little way up the road a villa
        was burning and sending rolling masses of black smoke across the road
        to add to the confusion.

        Two men came past them. Then a dirty woman, carrying a heavy
        bundle and weeping. A lost retriever dog, with hanging tongue,
        circled dubiously round them, scared and wretched, and fled at my
        brother's threat.

        So much as they could see of the road Londonward between the houses
        to the right was a tumultuous stream of dirty, hurrying people, pent
        in between the villas on either side; the black heads, the crowded
        forms, grew into distinctness as they rushed towards the corner,
        hurried past, and merged their individuality again in a receding
        multitude that was swallowed up at last in a cloud of dust.

        "Go on! Go on!" cried the voices. "Way! Way!"

        One man's hands pressed on the back of another. My brother stood
        at the pony's head. Irresistibly attracted, he advanced slowly, pace
        by pace, down the lane.

        Edgware had been a scene of confusion, Chalk Farm a riotous tumult,
        but this was a whole population in movement. It is hard to imagine
        that host. It had no character of its own. The figures poured out
        past the corner, and receded with their backs to the group in the
        lane. Along the margin came those who were on foot threatened by the
        wheels, stumbling in the ditches, blundering into one another.

        The carts and carriages crowded close upon one another, making
        little way for those swifter and more impatient vehicles that darted
        forward every now and then when an opportunity showed itself of doing
        so, sending the people scattering against the fences and gates of the
        villas.

        "Push on!" was the cry. "Push on! They are coming!"

        In one cart stood a blind man in the uniform of the Salvation Army,
        gesticulating with his crooked fingers and bawling, "Eternity!
        Eternity!" His voice was hoarse and very loud so that my brother
        could hear him long after he was lost to sight in the dust. Some of
        the people who crowded in the carts whipped stupidly at their horses
        and quarrelled with other drivers; some sat motionless, staring at
        nothing with miserable eyes; some gnawed their hands with thirst, or
        lay prostrate in the bottoms of their conveyances. The horses' bits
        were covered with foam, their eyes bloodshot.

        There were cabs, carriages, shop cars, waggons, beyond counting; a
        mail cart, a road-cleaner's cart marked "Vestry of St. Pancras," a
        huge timber waggon crowded with roughs. A brewer's dray rumbled by
        with its two near wheels splashed with fresh blood.

        "Clear the way!" cried the voices. "Clear the way!"

        "Eter-nity! Eter-nity!" came echoing down the road.

        There were sad, haggard women tramping by, well dressed, with
        children that cried and stumbled, their dainty clothes smothered in
        dust, their weary faces smeared with tears. With many of these came
        men, sometimes helpful, sometimes lowering and savage. Fighting side
        by side with them pushed some weary street outcast in faded black
        rags, wide-eyed, loud-voiced, and foul-mouthed. There were sturdy
        workmen thrusting their way along, wretched, unkempt men, clothed like
        clerks or shopmen, struggling spasmodically; a wounded soldier my
        brother noticed, men dressed in the clothes of railway porters, one
        wretched creature in a nightshirt with a coat thrown over it.

        But varied as its composition was, certain things all that host had
        in common. There were fear and pain on their faces, and fear behind
        them. A tumult up the road, a quarrel for a place in a waggon, sent
        the whole host of them quickening their pace; even a man so scared and
        broken that his knees bent under him was galvanised for a moment into
        renewed activity. The heat and dust had already been at work upon
        this multitude. Their skins were dry, their lips black and cracked.
        They were all thirsty, weary, and footsore. And amid the various
        cries one heard disputes, reproaches, groans of weariness and fatigue;
        the voices of most of them were hoarse and weak. Through it all ran a
        refrain:

        "Way! Way! The Martians are coming!"

        Few stopped and came aside from that flood. The lane opened
        slantingly into the main road with a narrow opening, and had a
        delusive appearance of coming from the direction of London. Yet a
        kind of eddy of people drove into its mouth; weaklings elbowed out of
        the stream, who for the most part rested but a moment before plunging
        into it again. A little way down the lane, with two friends bending
        over him, lay a man with a bare leg, wrapped about with bloody rags.
        He was a lucky man to have friends.

        A little old man, with a grey military moustache and a filthy black
        frock coat, limped out and sat down beside the trap, removed his
        boot--his sock was blood-stained--shook out a pebble, and hobbled on
        again; and then a little girl of eight or nine, all alone, threw
        herself under the hedge close by my brother, weeping.

        "I can't go on! I can't go on!"

        My brother woke from his torpor of astonishment and lifted her up,
        speaking gently to her, and carried her to Miss Elphinstone. So soon
        as my brother touched her she became quite still, as if frightened.

        "Ellen!" shrieked a woman in the crowd, with tears in her
        voice--"Ellen!" And the child suddenly darted away from my brother,
        crying "Mother!"

        "They are coming," said a man on horseback, riding past along the
        lane.

        "Out of the way, there!" bawled a coachman, towering high; and my
        brother saw a closed carriage turning into the lane.

        The people crushed back on one another to avoid the horse. My
        brother pushed the pony and chaise back into the hedge, and the man
        drove by and stopped at the turn of the way. It was a carriage, with
        a pole for a pair of horses, but only one was in the traces. My
        brother saw dimly through the dust that two men lifted out something
        on a white stretcher and put it gently on the grass beneath the privet
        hedge.

        One of the men came running to my brother.

        "Where is there any water?" he said. "He is dying fast, and very
        thirsty. It is Lord Garrick."

        "Lord Garrick!" said my brother; "the Chief Justice?"

        "The water?" he said.

        "There may be a tap," said my brother, "in some of the houses. We
        have no water. I dare not leave my people."

        The man pushed against the crowd towards the gate of the corner
        house.

        "Go on!" said the people, thrusting at him. "They are coming! Go
        on!"

        Then my brother's attention was distracted by a bearded, eagle-faced
        man lugging a small handbag, which split even as my brother's
        eyes rested on it and disgorged a mass of sovereigns that seemed to
        break up into separate coins as it struck the ground. They rolled
        hither and thither among the struggling feet of men and horses. The
        man stopped and looked stupidly at the heap, and the shaft of a cab
        struck his shoulder and sent him reeling. He gave a shriek and dodged
        back, and a cartwheel shaved him narrowly.

        "Way!" cried the men all about him. "Make way!"

        So soon as the cab had passed, he flung himself, with both hands
        open, upon the heap of coins, and began thrusting handfuls in his
        pocket. A horse rose close upon him, and in another moment, half
        rising, he had been borne down under the horse's hoofs.

        "Stop!" screamed my brother, and pushing a woman out of his way,
        tried to clutch the bit of the horse.

        Before he could get to it, he heard a scream under the wheels, and
        saw through the dust the rim passing over the poor wretch's back. The
        driver of the cart slashed his whip at my brother, who ran round
        behind the cart. The multitudinous shouting confused his ears. The
        man was writhing in the dust among his scattered money, unable to
        rise, for the wheel had broken his back, and his lower limbs lay limp
        and dead. My brother stood up and yelled at the next driver, and a
        man on a black horse came to his assistance.

        "Get him out of the road," said he; and, clutching the man's collar
        with his free hand, my brother lugged him sideways. But he still
        clutched after his money, and regarded my brother fiercely, hammering
        at his arm with a handful of gold. "Go on! Go on!" shouted angry
        voices behind.

        "Way! Way!"

        There was a smash as the pole of a carriage crashed into the cart
        that the man on horseback stopped. My brother looked up, and the man
        with the gold twisted his head round and bit the wrist that held his
        collar. There was a concussion, and the black horse came staggering
        sideways, and the carthorse pushed beside it. A hoof missed my
        brother's foot by a hair's breadth. He released his grip on the
        fallen man and jumped back. He saw anger change to terror on the face
        of the poor wretch on the ground, and in a moment he was hidden and my
        brother was borne backward and carried past the entrance of the lane,
        and had to fight hard in the torrent to recover it.

        He saw Miss Elphinstone covering her eyes, and a little child, with
        all a child's want of sympathetic imagination, staring with dilated
        eyes at a dusty something that lay black and still, ground and crushed
        under the rolling wheels. "Let us go back!" he shouted, and began
        turning the pony round. "We cannot cross this--hell," he said and they
        went back a hundred yards the way they had come, until the fighting
        crowd was hidden. As they passed the bend in the lane my brother saw
        the face of the dying man in the ditch under the privet, deadly white
        and drawn, and shining with perspiration. The two women sat silent,
        crouching in their seat and shivering.

        Then beyond the bend my brother stopped again. Miss Elphinstone
        was white and pale, and her sister-in-law sat weeping, too wretched
        even to call upon "George." My brother was horrified and perplexed.
        So soon as they had retreated he realised how urgent and unavoidable
        it was to attempt this crossing. He turned to Miss Elphinstone,
        suddenly resolute.

        "We must go that way," he said, and led the pony round again.

        For the second time that day this girl proved her quality. To force
        their way into the torrent of people, my brother plunged into the
        traffic and held back a cab horse, while she drove the pony across its
        head. A waggon locked wheels for a moment and ripped a long splinter
        from the chaise. In another moment they were caught and swept forward
        by the stream. My brother, with the cabman's whip marks red across
        his face and hands, scrambled into the chaise and took the reins from
        her.

        "Point the revolver at the man behind," he said, giving it to her,
        "if he presses us too hard. No!--point it at his horse."

        Then he began to look out for a chance of edging to the right
        across the road. But once in the stream he seemed to lose volition,
        to become a part of that dusty rout. They swept through Chipping
        Barnet with the torrent; they were nearly a mile beyond the centre of
        the town before they had fought across to the opposite side of the
        way. It was din and confusion indescribable; but in and beyond the
        town the road forks repeatedly, and this to some extent relieved the
        stress.

        They struck eastward through Hadley, and there on either side of
        the road, and at another place farther on they came upon a great
        multitude of people drinking at the stream, some fighting to come at
        the water. And farther on, from a lull near East Barnet, they saw
        two trains running slowly one after the other without signal or
        order--trains swarming with people, with men even among the coals
        behind the engines--going northward along the Great Northern Railway.
        My brother supposes they must have filled outside London, for at that
        time the furious terror of the people had rendered the central
        termini impossible.

        Near this place they halted for the rest of the afternoon, for the
        violence of the day had already utterly exhausted all three of them.
        They began to suffer the beginnings of hunger; the night was cold, and
        none of them dared to sleep. And in the evening many people came
        hurrying along the road nearby their stopping place, fleeing from
        unknown dangers before them, and going in the direction from which my
        brother had come.

        CHAPTER SEVENTEEN

        THE "THUNDER CHILD"

        Had the Martians aimed only at destruction, they might on Monday
        have annihilated the entire population of London, as it spread itself
        slowly through the home counties. Not only along the road through
        Barnet, but also through Edgware and Waltham Abbey, and along the
        roads eastward to Southend and Shoeburyness, and south of the Thames
        to Deal and Broadstairs, poured the same frantic rout. If one could
        have hung that June morning in a balloon in the blazing blue above
        London every northward and eastward road running out of the tangled
        maze of streets would have seemed stippled black with the streaming
        fugitives, each dot a human agony of terror and physical distress. I
        have set forth at length in the last chapter my brother's account of
        the road through Chipping Barnet, in order that my readers may realise
        how that swarming of black dots appeared to one of those concerned.
        Never before in the history of the world had such a mass of human
        beings moved and suffered together. The legendary hosts of Goths and
        Huns, the hugest armies Asia has ever seen, would have been but a drop
        in that current. And this was no disciplined march; it was a
        stampede--a stampede gigantic and terrible--without order and without
        a goal, six million people unarmed and unprovisioned, driving
        headlong. It was the beginning of the rout of civilisation, of the
        massacre of mankind.

        Directly below him the balloonist would have seen the network of
        streets far and wide, houses, churches, squares, crescents,
        gardens--already derelict--spread out like a huge map, and in the
        southward _blotted_. Over Ealing, Richmond, Wimbledon, it would
        have seemed as if some monstrous pen had flung ink upon the chart.
        Steadily, incessantly, each black splash grew and spread, shooting out
        ramifications this way and that, now banking itself against rising
        ground, now pouring swiftly over a crest into a new-found valley,
        exactly as a gout of ink would spread itself upon blotting paper.

        And beyond, over the blue hills that rise southward of the river,
        the glittering Martians went to and fro, calmly and methodically
        spreading their poison cloud over this patch of country and then over
        that, laying it again with their steam jets when it had served its
        purpose, and taking possession of the conquered country. They do not
        seem to have aimed at extermination so much as at complete
        demoralisation and the destruction of any opposition. They exploded
        any stores of powder they came upon, cut every telegraph, and wrecked
        the railways here and there. They were hamstringing mankind. They
        seemed in no hurry to extend the field of their operations, and did
        not come beyond the central part of London all that day. It is
        possible that a very considerable number of people in London stuck to
        their houses through Monday morning. Certain it is that many died at
        home suffocated by the Black Smoke.

        Until about midday the Pool of London was an astonishing scene.
        Steamboats and shipping of all sorts lay there, tempted by the
        enormous sums of money offered by fugitives, and it is said that many
        who swam out to these vessels were thrust off with boathooks and
        drowned. About one o'clock in the afternoon the thinning remnant of a
        cloud of the black vapour appeared between the arches of Blackfriars
        Bridge. At that the Pool became a scene of mad confusion, fighting,
        and collision, and for some time a multitude of boats and barges
        jammed in the northern arch of the Tower Bridge, and the sailors and
        lightermen had to fight savagely against the people who swarmed upon
        them from the riverfront. People were actually clambering down the
        piers of the bridge from above.

        When, an hour later, a Martian appeared beyond the Clock Tower and
        waded down the river, nothing but wreckage floated above Limehouse.

        Of the falling of the fifth cylinder I have presently to tell. The
        sixth star fell at Wimbledon. My brother, keeping watch beside the
        women in the chaise in a meadow, saw the green flash of it far beyond
        the hills. On Tuesday the little party, still set upon getting across
        the sea, made its way through the swarming country towards Colchester.
        The news that the Martians were now in possession of the whole of
        London was confirmed. They had been seen at Highgate, and even, it
        was said, at Neasden. But they did not come into my brother's view
        until the morrow.

        That day the scattered multitudes began to realise the urgent need
        of provisions. As they grew hungry the rights of property ceased to
        be regarded. Farmers were out to defend their cattle-sheds,
        granaries, and ripening root crops with arms in their hands. A number
        of people now, like my brother, had their faces eastward, and there
        were some desperate souls even going back towards London to get food.
        These were chiefly people from the northern suburbs, whose knowledge
        of the Black Smoke came by hearsay. He heard that about half the
        members of the government had gathered at Birmingham, and that
        enormous quantities of high explosives were being prepared to be used
        in automatic mines across the Midland counties.

        He was also told that the Midland Railway Company had replaced the
        desertions of the first day's panic, had resumed traffic, and was
        running northward trains from St. Albans to relieve the congestion of
        the home counties. There was also a placard in Chipping Ongar
        announcing that large stores of flour were available in the northern
        towns and that within twenty-four hours bread would be distributed
        among the starving people in the neighbourhood. But this intelligence
        did not deter him from the plan of escape he had formed, and the three
        pressed eastward all day, and heard no more of the bread distribution
        than this promise. Nor, as a matter of fact, did anyone else hear
        more of it. That night fell the seventh star, falling upon Primrose
        Hill. It fell while Miss Elphinstone was watching, for she took that
        duty alternately with my brother. She saw it.

        On Wednesday the three fugitives--they had passed the night in a
        field of unripe wheat--reached Chelmsford, and there a body of the
        inhabitants, calling itself the Committee of Public Supply, seized the
        pony as provisions, and would give nothing in exchange for it but the
        promise of a share in it the next day. Here there were rumours of
        Martians at Epping, and news of the destruction of Waltham Abbey
        Powder Mills in a vain attempt to blow up one of the invaders.

        People were watching for Martians here from the church towers. My
        brother, very luckily for him as it chanced, preferred to push on at
        once to the coast rather than wait for food, although all three of
        them were very hungry. By midday they passed through Tillingham,
        which, strangely enough, seemed to be quite silent and deserted, save
        for a few furtive plunderers hunting for food. Near Tillingham they
        suddenly came in sight of the sea, and the most amazing crowd of
        shipping of all sorts that it is possible to imagine.

        For after the sailors could no longer come up the Thames, they came
        on to the Essex coast, to Harwich and Walton and Clacton, and
        afterwards to Foulness and Shoebury, to bring off the people. They
        lay in a huge sickle-shaped curve that vanished into mist at last
        towards the Naze. Close inshore was a multitude of fishing
        smacks--English, Scotch, French, Dutch, and Swedish; steam launches
        from the Thames, yachts, electric boats; and beyond were ships of large
        burden, a multitude of filthy colliers, trim merchantmen, cattle ships,
        passenger boats, petroleum tanks, ocean tramps, an old white transport
        even, neat white and grey liners from Southampton and Hamburg; and
        along the blue coast across the Blackwater my brother could make out
        dimly a dense swarm of boats chaffering with the people on the beach,
        a swarm which also extended up the Blackwater almost to Maldon.

        About a couple of miles out lay an ironclad, very low in the water,
        almost, to my brother's perception, like a water-logged ship. This
        was the ram _Thunder Child_. It was the only warship in sight, but far
        away to the right over the smooth surface of the sea--for that day
        there was a dead calm--lay a serpent of black smoke to mark the next
        ironclads of the Channel Fleet, which hovered in an extended line,
        steam up and ready for action, across the Thames estuary during the
        course of the Martian conquest, vigilant and yet powerless to prevent
        it.

        At the sight of the sea, Mrs. Elphinstone, in spite of the
        assurances of her sister-in-law, gave way to panic. She had never
        been out of England before, she would rather die than trust herself
        friendless in a foreign country, and so forth. She seemed, poor woman,
        to imagine that the French and the Martians might prove very similar.
        She had been growing increasingly hysterical, fearful, and depressed
        during the two days' journeyings. Her great idea was to return to
        Stanmore. Things had been always well and safe at Stanmore. They
        would find George at Stanmore.

        It was with the greatest difficulty they could get her down to the
        beach, where presently my brother succeeded in attracting the
        attention of some men on a paddle steamer from the Thames. They sent
        a boat and drove a bargain for thirty-six pounds for the three. The
        steamer was going, these men said, to Ostend.

        It was about two o'clock when my brother, having paid their fares
        at the gangway, found himself safely aboard the steamboat with his
        charges. There was food aboard, albeit at exorbitant prices, and the
        three of them contrived to eat a meal on one of the seats forward.

        There were already a couple of score of passengers aboard, some of
        whom had expended their last money in securing a passage, but the
        captain lay off the Blackwater until five in the afternoon, picking up
        passengers until the seated decks were even dangerously crowded. He
        would probably have remained longer had it not been for the sound of
        guns that began about that hour in the south. As if in answer, the
        ironclad seaward fired a small gun and hoisted a string of flags. A
        jet of smoke sprang out of her funnels.

        Some of the passengers were of opinion that this firing came from
        Shoeburyness, until it was noticed that it was growing louder. At the
        same time, far away in the southeast the masts and upperworks of three
        ironclads rose one after the other out of the sea, beneath clouds of
        black smoke. But my brother's attention speedily reverted to the
        distant firing in the south. He fancied he saw a column of smoke
        rising out of the distant grey haze.

        The little steamer was already flapping her way eastward of the big
        crescent of shipping, and the low Essex coast was growing blue and
        hazy, when a Martian appeared, small and faint in the remote distance,
        advancing along the muddy coast from the direction of Foulness. At
        that the captain on the bridge swore at the top of his voice with fear
        and anger at his own delay, and the paddles seemed infected with his
        terror. Every soul aboard stood at the bulwarks or on the seats of
        the steamer and stared at that distant shape, higher than the trees or
        church towers inland, and advancing with a leisurely parody of a human
        stride.

        It was the first Martian my brother had seen, and he stood, more
        amazed than terrified, watching this Titan advancing deliberately
        towards the shipping, wading farther and farther into the water as the
        coast fell away. Then, far away beyond the Crouch, came another,
        striding over some stunted trees, and then yet another, still farther
        off, wading deeply through a shiny mudflat that seemed to hang halfway
        up between sea and sky. They were all stalking seaward, as if to
        intercept the escape of the multitudinous vessels that were crowded
        between Foulness and the Naze. In spite of the throbbing exertions of
        the engines of the little paddle-boat, and the pouring foam that her
        wheels flung behind her, she receded with terrifying slowness from
        this ominous advance.

        Glancing northwestward, my brother saw the large crescent of
        shipping already writhing with the approaching terror; one ship
        passing behind another, another coming round from broadside to end on,
        steamships whistling and giving off volumes of steam, sails being let
        out, launches rushing hither and thither. He was so fascinated by
        this and by the creeping danger away to the left that he had no eyes
        for anything seaward. And then a swift movement of the steamboat (she
        had suddenly come round to avoid being run down) flung him headlong
        from the seat upon which he was standing. There was a shouting all
        about him, a trampling of feet, and a cheer that seemed to be answered
        faintly. The steamboat lurched and rolled him over upon his hands.

        He sprang to his feet and saw to starboard, and not a hundred yards
        from their heeling, pitching boat, a vast iron bulk like the blade of
        a plough tearing through the water, tossing it on either side in huge
        waves of foam that leaped towards the steamer, flinging her paddles
        helplessly in the air, and then sucking her deck down almost to the
        waterline.

        A douche of spray blinded my brother for a moment. When his eyes
        were clear again he saw the monster had passed and was rushing
        landward. Big iron upperworks rose out of this headlong structure,
        and from that twin funnels projected and spat a smoking blast shot
        with fire. It was the torpedo ram, _Thunder Child_, steaming headlong,
        coming to the rescue of the threatened shipping.

        Keeping his footing on the heaving deck by clutching the bulwarks,
        my brother looked past this charging leviathan at the Martians again,
        and he saw the three of them now close together, and standing so far
        out to sea that their tripod supports were almost entirely submerged.
        Thus sunken, and seen in remote perspective, they appeared far less
        formidable than the huge iron bulk in whose wake the steamer was
        pitching so helplessly. It would seem they were regarding this new
        antagonist with astonishment. To their intelligence, it may be, the
        giant was even such another as themselves. The _Thunder Child_ fired no
        gun, but simply drove full speed towards them. It was probably her
        not firing that enabled her to get so near the enemy as she did. They
        did not know what to make of her. One shell, and they would have sent
        her to the bottom forthwith with the Heat-Ray.

        She was steaming at such a pace that in a minute she seemed halfway
        between the steamboat and the Martians--a diminishing black bulk
        against the receding horizontal expanse of the Essex coast.

        Suddenly the foremost Martian lowered his tube and discharged a
        canister of the black gas at the ironclad. It hit her larboard side
        and glanced off in an inky jet that rolled away to seaward, an
        unfolding torrent of Black Smoke, from which the ironclad drove clear.
        To the watchers from the steamer, low in the water and with the sun in
        their eyes, it seemed as though she were already among the Martians.

        They saw the gaunt figures separating and rising out of the water
        as they retreated shoreward, and one of them raised the camera-like
        generator of the Heat-Ray. He held it pointing obliquely downward,
        and a bank of steam sprang from the water at its touch. It must have
        driven through the iron of the ship's side like a white-hot iron rod
        through paper.

        A flicker of flame went up through the rising steam, and then the
        Martian reeled and staggered. In another moment he was cut down, and
        a great body of water and steam shot high in the air. The guns of the
        _Thunder Child_ sounded through the reek, going off one after the other,
        and one shot splashed the water high close by the steamer, ricocheted
        towards the other flying ships to the north, and smashed a smack to
        matchwood.

        But no one heeded that very much. At the sight of the Martian's
        collapse the captain on the bridge yelled inarticulately, and all the
        crowding passengers on the steamer's stern shouted together. And then
        they yelled again. For, surging out beyond the white tumult, drove
        something long and black, the flames streaming from its middle parts,
        its ventilators and funnels spouting fire.

        She was alive still; the steering gear, it seems, was intact and
        her engines working. She headed straight for a second Martian, and
        was within a hundred yards of him when the Heat-Ray came to bear. Then
        with a violent thud, a blinding flash, her decks, her funnels, leaped
        upward. The Martian staggered with the violence of her explosion, and
        in another moment the flaming wreckage, still driving forward with the
        impetus of its pace, had struck him and crumpled him up like a thing
        of cardboard. My brother shouted involuntarily. A boiling tumult of
        steam hid everything again.

        "Two!" yelled the captain.

        Everyone was shouting. The whole steamer from end to end rang with
        frantic cheering that was taken up first by one and then by all in the
        crowding multitude of ships and boats that was driving out to sea.

        The steam hung upon the water for many minutes, hiding the third
        Martian and the coast altogether. And all this time the boat was
        paddling steadily out to sea and away from the fight; and when at last
        the confusion cleared, the drifting bank of black vapour intervened,
        and nothing of the _Thunder Child_ could be made out, nor could the
        third Martian be seen. But the ironclads to seaward were now quite
        close and standing in towards shore past the steamboat.

        The little vessel continued to beat its way seaward, and the
        ironclads receded slowly towards the coast, which was hidden still by
        a marbled bank of vapour, part steam, part black gas, eddying and
        combining in the strangest way. The fleet of refugees was scattering
        to the northeast; several smacks were sailing between the ironclads
        and the steamboat. After a time, and before they reached the sinking
        cloud bank, the warships turned northward, and then abruptly went
        about and passed into the thickening haze of evening southward. The
        coast grew faint, and at last indistinguishable amid the low banks of
        clouds that were gathering about the sinking sun.

        Then suddenly out of the golden haze of the sunset came the
        vibration of guns, and a form of black shadows moving. Everyone
        struggled to the rail of the steamer and peered into the blinding
        furnace of the west, but nothing was to be distinguished clearly. A
        mass of smoke rose slanting and barred the face of the sun. The
        steamboat throbbed on its way through an interminable suspense.

        The sun sank into grey clouds, the sky flushed and darkened, the
        evening star trembled into sight. It was deep twilight when the
        captain cried out and pointed. My brother strained his eyes.
        Something rushed up into the sky out of the greyness--rushed
        slantingly upward and very swiftly into the luminous clearness above
        the clouds in the western sky; something flat and broad, and very
        large, that swept round in a vast curve, grew smaller, sank slowly,
        and vanished again into the grey mystery of the night. And as it flew
        it rained down darkness upon the land.

        BOOK TWO

        THE EARTH UNDER THE MARTIANS

        CHAPTER ONE

        UNDER FOOT

        In the first book I have wandered so much from my own adventures to
        tell of the experiences of my brother that all through the last two
        chapters I and the curate have been lurking in the empty house at
        Halliford whither we fled to escape the Black Smoke. There I will
        resume. We stopped there all Sunday night and all the next day--the
        day of the panic--in a little island of daylight, cut off by the Black
        Smoke from the rest of the world. We could do nothing but wait in
        aching inactivity during those two weary days.

        My mind was occupied by anxiety for my wife. I figured her at
        Leatherhead, terrified, in danger, mourning me already as a dead man.
        I paced the rooms and cried aloud when I thought of how I was cut off
        from her, of all that might happen to her in my absence. My cousin I
        knew was brave enough for any emergency, but he was not the sort of
        man to realise danger quickly, to rise promptly. What was needed now
        was not bravery, but circumspection. My only consolation was to
        believe that the Martians were moving London-ward and away from her.
        Such vague anxieties keep the mind sensitive and painful. I grew very
        weary and irritable with the curate's perpetual ejaculations; I tired
        of the sight of his selfish despair. After some ineffectual
        remonstrance I kept away from him, staying in a room--evidently a
        children's schoolroom--containing globes, forms, and copybooks. When
        he followed me thither, I went to a box room at the top of the house
        and, in order to be alone with my aching miseries, locked myself in.

        We were hopelessly hemmed in by the Black Smoke all that day and
        the morning of the next. There were signs of people in the next house
        on Sunday evening--a face at a window and moving lights, and later the
        slamming of a door. But I do not know who these people were, nor what
        became of them. We saw nothing of them next day. The Black Smoke
        drifted slowly riverward all through Monday morning, creeping nearer
        and nearer to us, driving at last along the roadway outside the house
        that hid us.

        A Martian came across the fields about midday, laying the stuff
        with a jet of superheated steam that hissed against the walls, smashed
        all the windows it touched, and scalded the curate's hand as he fled
        out of the front room. When at last we crept across the sodden rooms
        and looked out again, the country northward was as though a black
        snowstorm had passed over it. Looking towards the river, we were
        astonished to see an unaccountable redness mingling with the black of
        the scorched meadows.

        For a time we did not see how this change affected our position,
        save that we were relieved of our fear of the Black Smoke. But later
        I perceived that we were no longer hemmed in, that now we might get
        away. So soon as I realised that the way of escape was open, my dream
        of action returned. But the curate was lethargic, unreasonable.

        "We are safe here," he repeated; "safe here."

        I resolved to leave him--would that I had! Wiser now for the
        artilleryman's teaching, I sought out food and drink. I had found oil
        and rags for my burns, and I also took a hat and a flannel shirt that
        I found in one of the bedrooms. When it was clear to him that I meant
        to go alone--had reconciled myself to going alone--he suddenly roused
        himself to come. And all being quiet throughout the afternoon, we
        started about five o'clock, as I should judge, along the blackened
        road to Sunbury.

        In Sunbury, and at intervals along the road, were dead bodies lying
        in contorted attitudes, horses as well as men, overturned carts and
        luggage, all covered thickly with black dust. That pall of cindery
        powder made me think of what I had read of the destruction of Pompeii.
        We got to Hampton Court without misadventure, our minds full of
        strange and unfamiliar appearances, and at Hampton Court our eyes were
        relieved to find a patch of green that had escaped the suffocating
        drift. We went through Bushey Park, with its deer going to and fro
        under the chestnuts, and some men and women hurrying in the distance
        towards Hampton, and so we came to Twickenham. These were the first
        people we saw.

        Away across the road the woods beyond Ham and Petersham were still
        afire. Twickenham was uninjured by either Heat-Ray or Black Smoke,
        and there were more people about here, though none could give us news.
        For the most part they were like ourselves, taking advantage of a lull
        to shift their quarters. I have an impression that many of the houses
        here were still occupied by scared inhabitants, too frightened even
        for flight. Here too the evidence of a hasty rout was abundant along
        the road. I remember most vividly three smashed bicycles in a heap,
        pounded into the road by the wheels of subsequent carts. We crossed
        Richmond Bridge about half past eight. We hurried across the exposed
        bridge, of course, but I noticed floating down the stream a number
        of red masses, some many feet across. I did not know what these
        were--there was no time for scrutiny--and I put a more horrible
        interpretation on them than they deserved. Here again on the Surrey
        side were black dust that had once been smoke, and dead bodies--a heap
        near the approach to the station; but we had no glimpse of the
        Martians until we were some way towards Barnes.

        We saw in the blackened distance a group of three people running
        down a side street towards the river, but otherwise it seemed
        deserted. Up the hill Richmond town was burning briskly; outside the
        town of Richmond there was no trace of the Black Smoke.

        Then suddenly, as we approached Kew, came a number of people
        running, and the upperworks of a Martian fighting-machine loomed in
        sight over the housetops, not a hundred yards away from us. We stood
        aghast at our danger, and had the Martian looked down we must
        immediately have perished. We were so terrified that we dared not go
        on, but turned aside and hid in a shed in a garden. There the curate
        crouched, weeping silently, and refusing to stir again.

        But my fixed idea of reaching Leatherhead would not let me rest,
        and in the twilight I ventured out again. I went through a shrubbery,
        and along a passage beside a big house standing in its own grounds,
        and so emerged upon the road towards Kew. The curate I left in the
        shed, but he came hurrying after me.

        That second start was the most foolhardy thing I ever did. For it
        was manifest the Martians were about us. No sooner had the curate
        overtaken me than we saw either the fighting-machine we had seen
        before or another, far away across the meadows in the direction of Kew
        Lodge. Four or five little black figures hurried before it across the
        green-grey of the field, and in a moment it was evident this Martian
        pursued them. In three strides he was among them, and they ran
        radiating from his feet in all directions. He used no Heat-Ray to
        destroy them, but picked them up one by one. Apparently he tossed
        them into the great metallic carrier which projected behind him, much
        as a workman's basket hangs over his shoulder.

        It was the first time I realised that the Martians might have any
        other purpose than destruction with defeated humanity. We stood for a
        moment petrified, then turned and fled through a gate behind us into a
        walled garden, fell into, rather than found, a fortunate ditch, and
        lay there, scarce daring to whisper to each other until the stars were
        out.

        I suppose it was nearly eleven o'clock before we gathered courage
        to start again, no longer venturing into the road, but sneaking along
        hedgerows and through plantations, and watching keenly through the
        darkness, he on the right and I on the left, for the Martians, who
        seemed to be all about us. In one place we blundered upon a scorched
        and blackened area, now cooling and ashen, and a number of scattered
        dead bodies of men, burned horribly about the heads and trunks but
        with their legs and boots mostly intact; and of dead horses, fifty
        feet, perhaps, behind a line of four ripped guns and smashed gun
        carriages.

        Sheen, it seemed, had escaped destruction, but the place was silent
        and deserted. Here we happened on no dead, though the night was too
        dark for us to see into the side roads of the place. In Sheen my
        companion suddenly complained of faintness and thirst, and we decided
        to try one of the houses.

        The first house we entered, after a little difficulty with the
        window, was a small semi-detached villa, and I found nothing eatable
        left in the place but some mouldy cheese. There was, however, water
        to drink; and I took a hatchet, which promised to be useful in our
        next house-breaking.

        We then crossed to a place where the road turns towards Mortlake.
        Here there stood a white house within a walled garden, and in the
        pantry of this domicile we found a store of food--two loaves of bread
        in a pan, an uncooked steak, and the half of a ham. I give this
        catalogue so precisely because, as it happened, we were destined to
        subsist upon this store for the next fortnight. Bottled beer stood
        under a shelf, and there were two bags of haricot beans and some limp
        lettuces. This pantry opened into a kind of wash-up kitchen, and in
        this was firewood; there was also a cupboard, in which we found nearly
        a dozen of burgundy, tinned soups and salmon, and two tins of
        biscuits.

        We sat in the adjacent kitchen in the dark--for we dared not strike
        a light--and ate bread and ham, and drank beer out of the same bottle.
        The curate, who was still timorous and restless, was now, oddly
        enough, for pushing on, and I was urging him to keep up his strength
        by eating when the thing happened that was to imprison us.

        "It can't be midnight yet," I said, and then came a blinding glare
        of vivid green light. Everything in the kitchen leaped out, clearly
        visible in green and black, and vanished again. And then followed such
        a concussion as I have never heard before or since. So close on the
        heels of this as to seem instantaneous came a thud behind me, a clash
        of glass, a crash and rattle of falling masonry all about us, and the
        plaster of the ceiling came down upon us, smashing into a multitude of
        fragments upon our heads. I was knocked headlong across the floor
        against the oven handle and stunned. I was insensible for a long
        time, the curate told me, and when I came to we were in darkness
        again, and he, with a face wet, as I found afterwards, with blood from
        a cut forehead, was dabbing water over me.

        For some time I could not recollect what had happened. Then things
        came to me slowly. A bruise on my temple asserted itself.

        "Are you better?" asked the curate in a whisper.

        At last I answered him. I sat up.

        "Don't move," he said. "The floor is covered with smashed crockery
        from the dresser. You can't possibly move without making a noise, and
        I fancy _they_ are outside."

        We both sat quite silent, so that we could scarcely hear each other
        breathing. Everything seemed deadly still, but once something near
        us, some plaster or broken brickwork, slid down with a rumbling sound.
        Outside and very near was an intermittent, metallic rattle.

        "That!" said the curate, when presently it happened again.

        "Yes," I said. "But what is it?"

        "A Martian!" said the curate.

        I listened again.

        "It was not like the Heat-Ray," I said, and for a time I was
        inclined to think one of the great fighting-machines had stumbled
        against the house, as I had seen one stumble against the tower of
        Shepperton Church.

        Our situation was so strange and incomprehensible that for three or
        four hours, until the dawn came, we scarcely moved. And then the light
        filtered in, not through the window, which remained black, but through
        a triangular aperture between a beam and a heap of broken bricks in
        the wall behind us. The interior of the kitchen we now saw greyly for
        the first time.

        The window had been burst in by a mass of garden mould, which
        flowed over the table upon which we had been sitting and lay about our
        feet. Outside, the soil was banked high against the house. At the
        top of the window frame we could see an uprooted drainpipe. The floor
        was littered with smashed hardware; the end of the kitchen towards the
        house was broken into, and since the daylight shone in there, it was
        evident the greater part of the house had collapsed. Contrasting
        vividly with this ruin was the neat dresser, stained in the fashion,
        pale green, and with a number of copper and tin vessels below it, the
        wallpaper imitating blue and white tiles, and a couple of coloured
        supplements fluttering from the walls above the kitchen range.

        As the dawn grew clearer, we saw through the gap in the wall the
        body of a Martian, standing sentinel, I suppose, over the still
        glowing cylinder. At the sight of that we crawled as circumspectly as
        possible out of the twilight of the kitchen into the darkness of the
        scullery.

        Abruptly the right interpretation dawned upon my mind.

        "The fifth cylinder," I whispered, "the fifth shot from Mars, has
        struck this house and buried us under the ruins!"

        For a time the curate was silent, and then he whispered:

        "God have mercy upon us!"

        I heard him presently whimpering to himself.

        Save for that sound we lay quite still in the scullery; I for my
        part scarce dared breathe, and sat with my eyes fixed on the faint
        light of the kitchen door. I could just see the curate's face, a dim,
        oval shape, and his collar and cuffs. Outside there began a metallic
        hammering, then a violent hooting, and then again, after a quiet
        interval, a hissing like the hissing of an engine. These noises, for
        the most part problematical, continued intermittently, and seemed if
        anything to increase in number as time wore on. Presently a measured
        thudding and a vibration that made everything about us quiver and the
        vessels in the pantry ring and shift, began and continued. Once the
        light was eclipsed, and the ghostly kitchen doorway became absolutely
        dark. For many hours we must have crouched there, silent and
        shivering, until our tired attention failed. . . .

        At last I found myself awake and very hungry. I am inclined to
        believe we must have spent the greater portion of a day before that
        awakening. My hunger was at a stride so insistent that it moved me to
        action. I told the curate I was going to seek food, and felt my way
        towards the pantry. He made me no answer, but so soon as I began
        eating the faint noise I made stirred him up and I heard him crawling
        after me.

        CHAPTER TWO

        WHAT WE SAW FROM THE RUINED HOUSE

        After eating we crept back to the scullery, and there I must have
        dozed again, for when presently I looked round I was alone. The
        thudding vibration continued with wearisome persistence. I whispered
        for the curate several times, and at last felt my way to the door of
        the kitchen. It was still daylight, and I perceived him across the
        room, lying against the triangular hole that looked out upon the
        Martians. His shoulders were hunched, so that his head was hidden
        from me.

        I could hear a number of noises almost like those in an engine
        shed; and the place rocked with that beating thud. Through the
        aperture in the wall I could see the top of a tree touched with gold
        and the warm blue of a tranquil evening sky. For a minute or so I
        remained watching the curate, and then I advanced, crouching and
        stepping with extreme care amid the broken crockery that littered the
        floor.

        I touched the curate's leg, and he started so violently that a mass
        of plaster went sliding down outside and fell with a loud impact. I
        gripped his arm, fearing he might cry out, and for a long time we
        crouched motionless. Then I turned to see how much of our rampart
        remained. The detachment of the plaster had left a vertical slit open
        in the debris, and by raising myself cautiously across a beam I was
        able to see out of this gap into what had been overnight a quiet
        suburban roadway. Vast, indeed, was the change that we beheld.

        The fifth cylinder must have fallen right into the midst of the
        house we had first visited. The building had vanished, completely
        smashed, pulverised, and dispersed by the blow. The cylinder lay now
        far beneath the original foundations--deep in a hole, already vastly
        larger than the pit I had looked into at Woking. The earth all round
        it had splashed under that tremendous impact--"splashed" is the only
        word--and lay in heaped piles that hid the masses of the adjacent
        houses. It had behaved exactly like mud under the violent blow of a
        hammer. Our house had collapsed backward; the front portion, even on
        the ground floor, had been destroyed completely; by a chance the
        kitchen and scullery had escaped, and stood buried now under soil and
        ruins, closed in by tons of earth on every side save towards the
        cylinder. Over that aspect we hung now on the very edge of the great
        circular pit the Martians were engaged in making. The heavy beating
        sound was evidently just behind us, and ever and again a bright green
        vapour drove up like a veil across our peephole.

        The cylinder was already opened in the centre of the pit, and on
        the farther edge of the pit, amid the smashed and gravel-heaped
        shrubbery, one of the great fighting-machines, deserted by its
        occupant, stood stiff and tall against the evening sky. At first I
        scarcely noticed the pit and the cylinder, although it has been
        convenient to describe them first, on account of the extraordinary
        glittering mechanism I saw busy in the excavation, and on account of
        the strange creatures that were crawling slowly and painfully across
        the heaped mould near it.

        The mechanism it certainly was that held my attention first. It
        was one of those complicated fabrics that have since been called
        handling-machines, and the study of which has already given such an
        enormous impetus to terrestrial invention. As it dawned upon me
        first, it presented a sort of metallic spider with five jointed,
        agile legs, and with an extraordinary number of jointed levers, bars,
        and reaching and clutching tentacles about its body. Most of its
        arms were retracted, but with three long tentacles it was fishing
        out a number of rods, plates, and bars which lined the covering and
        apparently strengthened the walls of the cylinder. These, as it
        extracted them, were lifted out and deposited upon a level surface
        of earth behind it.

        Its motion was so swift, complex, and perfect that at first I did
        not see it as a machine, in spite of its metallic glitter. The
        fighting-machines were coordinated and animated to an extraordinary
        pitch, but nothing to compare with this. People who have never seen
        these structures, and have only the ill-imagined efforts of artists or
        the imperfect descriptions of such eye-witnesses as myself to go upon,
        scarcely realise that living quality.

        I recall particularly the illustration of one of the first
        pamphlets to give a consecutive account of the war. The artist had
        evidently made a hasty study of one of the fighting-machines, and
        there his knowledge ended. He presented them as tilted, stiff
        tripods, without either flexibility or subtlety, and with an
        altogether misleading monotony of effect. The pamphlet containing
        these renderings had a considerable vogue, and I mention them here
        simply to warn the reader against the impression they may have
        created. They were no more like the Martians I saw in action than a
        Dutch doll is like a human being. To my mind, the pamphlet would have
        been much better without them.

        At first, I say, the handling-machine did not impress me as a
        machine, but as a crablike creature with a glittering integument, the
        controlling Martian whose delicate tentacles actuated its movements
        seeming to be simply the equivalent of the crab's cerebral portion.
        But then I perceived the resemblance of its grey-brown, shiny,
        leathery integument to that of the other sprawling bodies beyond, and
        the true nature of this dexterous workman dawned upon me. With that
        realisation my interest shifted to those other creatures, the real
        Martians. Already I had had a transient impression of these, and the
        first nausea no longer obscured my observation. Moreover, I was
        concealed and motionless, and under no urgency of action.

        They were, I now saw, the most unearthly creatures it is possible
        to conceive. They were huge round bodies--or, rather, heads--about
        four feet in diameter, each body having in front of it a face. This
        face had no nostrils--indeed, the Martians do not seem to have had any
        sense of smell, but it had a pair of very large dark-coloured eyes,
        and just beneath this a kind of fleshy beak. In the back of this head
        or body--I scarcely know how to speak of it--was the single tight
        tympanic surface, since known to be anatomically an ear, though it
        must have been almost useless in our dense air. In a group round the
        mouth were sixteen slender, almost whiplike tentacles, arranged in two
        bunches of eight each. These bunches have since been named rather
        aptly, by that distinguished anatomist, Professor Howes, the _hands_.
        Even as I saw these Martians for the first time they seemed to be
        endeavouring to raise themselves on these hands, but of course, with
        the increased weight of terrestrial conditions, this was impossible.
        There is reason to suppose that on Mars they may have progressed upon
        them with some facility.

        The internal anatomy, I may remark here, as dissection has since
        shown, was almost equally simple. The greater part of the structure
        was the brain, sending enormous nerves to the eyes, ear, and tactile
        tentacles. Besides this were the bulky lungs, into which the mouth
        opened, and the heart and its vessels. The pulmonary distress caused
        by the denser atmosphere and greater gravitational attraction was only
        too evident in the convulsive movements of the outer skin.

        And this was the sum of the Martian organs. Strange as it may seem
        to a human being, all the complex apparatus of digestion, which makes
        up the bulk of our bodies, did not exist in the Martians. They were
        heads--merely heads. Entrails they had none. They did not eat, much
        less digest. Instead, they took the fresh, living blood of other
        creatures, and _injected_ it into their own veins. I have myself seen
        this being done, as I shall mention in its place. But, squeamish as I
        may seem, I cannot bring myself to describe what I could not endure
        even to continue watching. Let it suffice to say, blood obtained from
        a still living animal, in most cases from a human being, was run
        directly by means of a little pipette into the recipient canal. . . .

        The bare idea of this is no doubt horribly repulsive to us, but at
        the same time I think that we should remember how repulsive our
        carnivorous habits would seem to an intelligent rabbit.

        The physiological advantages of the practice of injection are
        undeniable, if one thinks of the tremendous waste of human time and
        energy occasioned by eating and the digestive process. Our bodies are
        half made up of glands and tubes and organs, occupied in turning
        heterogeneous food into blood. The digestive processes and their
        reaction upon the nervous system sap our strength and colour our
        minds. Men go happy or miserable as they have healthy or unhealthy
        livers, or sound gastric glands. But the Martians were lifted above
        all these organic fluctuations of mood and emotion.

        Their undeniable preference for men as their source of nourishment
        is partly explained by the nature of the remains of the victims they
        had brought with them as provisions from Mars. These creatures, to
        judge from the shrivelled remains that have fallen into human hands,
        were bipeds with flimsy, silicious skeletons (almost like those of the
        silicious sponges) and feeble musculature, standing about six feet
        high and having round, erect heads, and large eyes in flinty sockets.
        Two or three of these seem to have been brought in each cylinder, and
        all were killed before earth was reached. It was just as well for
        them, for the mere attempt to stand upright upon our planet would have
        broken every bone in their bodies.

        And while I am engaged in this description, I may add in this place
        certain further details which, although they were not all evident to
        us at the time, will enable the reader who is unacquainted with them
        to form a clearer picture of these offensive creatures.

        In three other points their physiology differed strangely from
        ours. Their organisms did not sleep, any more than the heart of man
        sleeps. Since they had no extensive muscular mechanism to recuperate,
        that periodical extinction was unknown to them. They had little or
        no sense of fatigue, it would seem. On earth they could never have
        moved without effort, yet even to the last they kept in action. In
        twenty-four hours they did twenty-four hours of work, as even on earth
        is perhaps the case with the ants.

        In the next place, wonderful as it seems in a sexual world, the
        Martians were absolutely without sex, and therefore without any of the
        tumultuous emotions that arise from that difference among men. A
        young Martian, there can now be no dispute, was really born upon earth
        during the war, and it was found attached to its parent, partially
        _budded_ off, just as young lilybulbs bud off, or like the young animals
        in the fresh-water polyp.

        In man, in all the higher terrestrial animals, such a method of
        increase has disappeared; but even on this earth it was certainly the
        primitive method. Among the lower animals, up even to those first
        cousins of the vertebrated animals, the Tunicates, the two processes
        occur side by side, but finally the sexual method superseded its
        competitor altogether. On Mars, however, just the reverse has
        apparently been the case.

        It is worthy of remark that a certain speculative writer of
        quasi-scientific repute, writing long before the Martian invasion, did
        forecast for man a final structure not unlike the actual Martian
        condition. His prophecy, I remember, appeared in November or
        December, 1893, in a long-defunct publication, the _Pall Mall Budget_,
        and I recall a caricature of it in a pre-Martian periodical called
        _Punch_. He pointed out--writing in a foolish, facetious tone--that the
        perfection of mechanical appliances must ultimately supersede limbs;
        the perfection of chemical devices, digestion; that such organs as
        hair, external nose, teeth, ears, and chin were no longer essential
        parts of the human being, and that the tendency of natural selection
        would lie in the direction of their steady diminution through the
        coming ages. The brain alone remained a cardinal necessity. Only one
        other part of the body had a strong case for survival, and that was
        the hand, "teacher and agent of the brain." While the rest of the
        body dwindled, the hands would grow larger.

        There is many a true word written in jest, and here in the Martians
        we have beyond dispute the actual accomplishment of such a suppression
        of the animal side of the organism by the intelligence. To me it is
        quite credible that the Martians may be descended from beings not
        unlike ourselves, by a gradual development of brain and hands (the
        latter giving rise to the two bunches of delicate tentacles at last)
        at the expense of the rest of the body. Without the body the brain
        would, of course, become a mere selfish intelligence, without any of
        the emotional substratum of the human being.

        The last salient point in which the systems of these creatures
        differed from ours was in what one might have thought a very trivial
        particular. Micro-organisms, which cause so much disease and pain on
        earth, have either never appeared upon Mars or Martian sanitary
        science eliminated them ages ago. A hundred diseases, all the fevers
        and contagions of human life, consumption, cancers, tumours and such
        morbidities, never enter the scheme of their life. And speaking of
        the differences between the life on Mars and terrestrial life, I may
        allude here to the curious suggestions of the red weed.

        Apparently the vegetable kingdom in Mars, instead of having green
        for a dominant colour, is of a vivid blood-red tint. At any rate, the
        seeds which the Martians (intentionally or accidentally) brought with
        them gave rise in all cases to red-coloured growths. Only that known
        popularly as the red weed, however, gained any footing in competition
        with terrestrial forms. The red creeper was quite a transitory
        growth, and few people have seen it growing. For a time, however, the
        red weed grew with astonishing vigour and luxuriance. It spread up
        the sides of the pit by the third or fourth day of our imprisonment,
        and its cactus-like branches formed a carmine fringe to the edges of
        our triangular window. And afterwards I found it broadcast throughout
        the country, and especially wherever there was a stream of water.

        The Martians had what appears to have been an auditory organ, a
        single round drum at the back of the head-body, and eyes with a visual
        range not very different from ours except that, according to Philips,
        blue and violet were as black to them. It is commonly supposed that
        they communicated by sounds and tentacular gesticulations; this is
        asserted, for instance, in the able but hastily compiled pamphlet
        (written evidently by someone not an eye-witness of Martian actions)
        to which I have already alluded, and which, so far, has been the chief
        source of information concerning them. Now no surviving human being
        saw so much of the Martians in action as I did. I take no credit to
        myself for an accident, but the fact is so. And I assert that I
        watched them closely time after time, and that I have seen four, five,
        and (once) six of them sluggishly performing the most elaborately
        complicated operations together without either sound or gesture. Their
        peculiar hooting invariably preceded feeding; it had no modulation,
        and was, I believe, in no sense a signal, but merely the expiration of
        air preparatory to the suctional operation. I have a certain claim to
        at least an elementary knowledge of psychology, and in this matter I
        am convinced--as firmly as I am convinced of anything--that the
        Martians interchanged thoughts without any physical intermediation.
        And I have been convinced of this in spite of strong preconceptions.
        Before the Martian invasion, as an occasional reader here or there may
        remember, I had written with some little vehemence against the
        telepathic theory.

        The Martians wore no clothing. Their conceptions of ornament and
        decorum were necessarily different from ours; and not only were they
        evidently much less sensible of changes of temperature than we are,
        but changes of pressure do not seem to have affected their health at
        all seriously. Yet though they wore no clothing, it was in the other
        artificial additions to their bodily resources that their great
        superiority over man lay. We men, with our bicycles and road-skates,
        our Lilienthal soaring-machines, our guns and sticks and so forth, are
        just in the beginning of the evolution that the Martians have worked
        out. They have become practically mere brains, wearing different
        bodies according to their needs just as men wear suits of clothes and
        take a bicycle in a hurry or an umbrella in the wet. And of their
        appliances, perhaps nothing is more wonderful to a man than the
        curious fact that what is the dominant feature of almost all human
        devices in mechanism is absent--the _wheel_ is absent; among all the
        things they brought to earth there is no trace or suggestion of their
        use of wheels. One would have at least expected it in locomotion. And
        in this connection it is curious to remark that even on this earth
        Nature has never hit upon the wheel, or has preferred other expedients
        to its development. And not only did the Martians either not know of
        (which is incredible), or abstain from, the wheel, but in their
        apparatus singularly little use is made of the fixed pivot or
        relatively fixed pivot, with circular motions thereabout confined
        to one plane. Almost all the joints of the machinery present a
        complicated system of sliding parts moving over small but beautifully
        curved friction bearings. And while upon this matter of detail, it is
        remarkable that the long leverages of their machines are in most cases
        actuated by a sort of sham musculature of the disks in an elastic
        sheath; these disks become polarised and drawn closely and powerfully
        together when traversed by a current of electricity. In this way the
        curious parallelism to animal motions, which was so striking and
        disturbing to the human beholder, was attained. Such quasi-muscles
        abounded in the crablike handling-machine which, on my first peeping
        out of the slit, I watched unpacking the cylinder. It seemed
        infinitely more alive than the actual Martians lying beyond it in the
        sunset light, panting, stirring ineffectual tentacles, and moving
        feebly after their vast journey across space.

        While I was still watching their sluggish motions in the sunlight,
        and noting each strange detail of their form, the curate reminded me
        of his presence by pulling violently at my arm. I turned to a
        scowling face, and silent, eloquent lips. He wanted the slit, which
        permitted only one of us to peep through; and so I had to forego
        watching them for a time while he enjoyed that privilege.

        When I looked again, the busy handling-machine had already put
        together several of the pieces of apparatus it had taken out of the
        cylinder into a shape having an unmistakable likeness to its own; and
        down on the left a busy little digging mechanism had come into view,
        emitting jets of green vapour and working its way round the pit,
        excavating and embanking in a methodical and discriminating manner.
        This it was which had caused the regular beating noise, and the
        rhythmic shocks that had kept our ruinous refuge quivering. It piped
        and whistled as it worked. So far as I could see, the thing was
        without a directing Martian at all.

        CHAPTER THREE

        THE DAYS OF IMPRISONMENT

        The arrival of a second fighting-machine drove us from our peephole
        into the scullery, for we feared that from his elevation the Martian
        might see down upon us behind our barrier. At a later date we began
        to feel less in danger of their eyes, for to an eye in the dazzle of
        the sunlight outside our refuge must have been blank blackness, but at
        first the slightest suggestion of approach drove us into the scullery
        in heart-throbbing retreat. Yet terrible as was the danger we
        incurred, the attraction of peeping was for both of us irresistible.
        And I recall now with a sort of wonder that, in spite of the infinite
        danger in which we were between starvation and a still more terrible
        death, we could yet struggle bitterly for that horrible privilege of
        sight. We would race across the kitchen in a grotesque way between
        eagerness and the dread of making a noise, and strike each other, and
        thrust and kick, within a few inches of exposure.

        The fact is that we had absolutely incompatible dispositions and
        habits of thought and action, and our danger and isolation only
        accentuated the incompatibility. At Halliford I had already come to
        hate the curate's trick of helpless exclamation, his stupid rigidity
        of mind. His endless muttering monologue vitiated every effort I made
        to think out a line of action, and drove me at times, thus pent up and
        intensified, almost to the verge of craziness. He was as lacking in
        restraint as a silly woman. He would weep for hours together, and I
        verily believe that to the very end this spoiled child of life thought
        his weak tears in some way efficacious. And I would sit in the
        darkness unable to keep my mind off him by reason of his
        importunities. He ate more than I did, and it was in vain I pointed
        out that our only chance of life was to stop in the house until the
        Martians had done with their pit, that in that long patience a time
        might presently come when we should need food. He ate and drank
        impulsively in heavy meals at long intervals. He slept little.

        As the days wore on, his utter carelessness of any consideration so
        intensified our distress and danger that I had, much as I loathed
        doing it, to resort to threats, and at last to blows. That brought him
        to reason for a time. But he was one of those weak creatures, void of
        pride, timorous, anaemic, hateful souls, full of shifty cunning, who
        face neither God nor man, who face not even themselves.

        It is disagreeable for me to recall and write these things, but I
        set them down that my story may lack nothing. Those who have escaped
        the dark and terrible aspects of life will find my brutality, my flash
        of rage in our final tragedy, easy enough to blame; for they know what
        is wrong as well as any, but not what is possible to tortured men. But
        those who have been under the shadow, who have gone down at last to
        elemental things, will have a wider charity.

        And while within we fought out our dark, dim contest of whispers,
        snatched food and drink, and gripping hands and blows, without, in the
        pitiless sunlight of that terrible June, was the strange wonder, the
        unfamiliar routine of the Martians in the pit. Let me return to those
        first new experiences of mine. After a long time I ventured back to
        the peephole, to find that the new-comers had been reinforced by the
        occupants of no fewer than three of the fighting-machines. These last
        had brought with them certain fresh appliances that stood in an
        orderly manner about the cylinder. The second handling-machine was now
        completed, and was busied in serving one of the novel contrivances the
        big machine had brought. This was a body resembling a milk can in its
        general form, above which oscillated a pear-shaped receptacle, and
        from which a stream of white powder flowed into a circular basin
        below.

        The oscillatory motion was imparted to this by one tentacle of the
        handling-machine. With two spatulate hands the handling-machine was
        digging out and flinging masses of clay into the pear-shaped
        receptacle above, while with another arm it periodically opened a door
        and removed rusty and blackened clinkers from the middle part of the
        machine. Another steely tentacle directed the powder from the basin
        along a ribbed channel towards some receiver that was hidden from me
        by the mound of bluish dust. From this unseen receiver a little
        thread of green smoke rose vertically into the quiet air. As I looked,
        the handling-machine, with a faint and musical clinking, extended,
        telescopic fashion, a tentacle that had been a moment before a mere
        blunt projection, until its end was hidden behind the mound of clay.
        In another second it had lifted a bar of white aluminium into sight,
        untarnished as yet, and shining dazzlingly, and deposited it in a
        growing stack of bars that stood at the side of the pit. Between
        sunset and starlight this dexterous machine must have made more than a
        hundred such bars out of the crude clay, and the mound of bluish dust
        rose steadily until it topped the side of the pit.

        The contrast between the swift and complex movements of these
        contrivances and the inert panting clumsiness of their masters was
        acute, and for days I had to tell myself repeatedly that these latter
        were indeed the living of the two things.

        The curate had possession of the slit when the first men were
        brought to the pit. I was sitting below, huddled up, listening with
        all my ears. He made a sudden movement backward, and I, fearful that
        we were observed, crouched in a spasm of terror. He came sliding down
        the rubbish and crept beside me in the darkness, inarticulate,
        gesticulating, and for a moment I shared his panic. His gesture
        suggested a resignation of the slit, and after a little while my
        curiosity gave me courage, and I rose up, stepped across him, and
        clambered up to it. At first I could see no reason for his frantic
        behaviour. The twilight had now come, the stars were little and
        faint, but the pit was illuminated by the flickering green fire that
        came from the aluminium-making. The whole picture was a flickering
        scheme of green gleams and shifting rusty black shadows, strangely
        trying to the eyes. Over and through it all went the bats, heeding it
        not at all. The sprawling Martians were no longer to be seen, the
        mound of blue-green powder had risen to cover them from sight, and a
        fighting-machine, with its legs contracted, crumpled, and abbreviated,
        stood across the corner of the pit. And then, amid the clangour of
        the machinery, came a drifting suspicion of human voices, that I
        entertained at first only to dismiss.

        I crouched, watching this fighting-machine closely, satisfying
        myself now for the first time that the hood did indeed contain a
        Martian. As the green flames lifted I could see the oily gleam of
        his integument and the brightness of his eyes. And suddenly I heard
        a yell, and saw a long tentacle reaching over the shoulder of the
        machine to the little cage that hunched upon its back. Then
        something--something struggling violently--was lifted high against the
        sky, a black, vague enigma against the starlight; and as this black
        object came down again, I saw by the green brightness that it was a
        man. For an instant he was clearly visible. He was a stout, ruddy,
        middle-aged man, well dressed; three days before, he must have been
        walking the world, a man of considerable consequence. I could see his
        staring eyes and gleams of light on his studs and watch chain. He
        vanished behind the mound, and for a moment there was silence. And
        then began a shrieking and a sustained and cheerful hooting from the
        Martians.

        I slid down the rubbish, struggled to my feet, clapped my hands
        over my ears, and bolted into the scullery. The curate, who had been
        crouching silently with his arms over his head, looked up as I passed,
        cried out quite loudly at my desertion of him, and came running after
        me.

        That night, as we lurked in the scullery, balanced between our
        horror and the terrible fascination this peeping had, although I felt
        an urgent need of action I tried in vain to conceive some plan of
        escape; but afterwards, during the second day, I was able to consider
        our position with great clearness. The curate, I found, was quite
        incapable of discussion; this new and culminating atrocity had robbed
        him of all vestiges of reason or forethought. Practically he had
        already sunk to the level of an animal. But as the saying goes, I
        gripped myself with both hands. It grew upon my mind, once I could
        face the facts, that terrible as our position was, there was as yet
        no justification for absolute despair. Our chief chance lay in the
        possibility of the Martians making the pit nothing more than a
        temporary encampment. Or even if they kept it permanently, they might
        not consider it necessary to guard it, and a chance of escape might be
        afforded us. I also weighed very carefully the possibility of our
        digging a way out in a direction away from the pit, but the chances of
        our emerging within sight of some sentinel fighting-machine seemed at
        first too great. And I should have had to do all the digging myself.
        The curate would certainly have failed me.

        It was on the third day, if my memory serves me right, that I saw
        the lad killed. It was the only occasion on which I actually saw the
        Martians feed. After that experience I avoided the hole in the wall
        for the better part of a day. I went into the scullery, removed the
        door, and spent some hours digging with my hatchet as silently as
        possible; but when I had made a hole about a couple of feet deep the
        loose earth collapsed noisily, and I did not dare continue. I lost
        heart, and lay down on the scullery floor for a long time, having no
        spirit even to move. And after that I abandoned altogether the idea
        of escaping by excavation.

        It says much for the impression the Martians had made upon me that
        at first I entertained little or no hope of our escape being brought
        about by their overthrow through any human effort. But on the fourth
        or fifth night I heard a sound like heavy guns.

        It was very late in the night, and the moon was shining brightly.
        The Martians had taken away the excavating-machine, and, save for a
        fighting-machine that stood in the remoter bank of the pit and a
        handling-machine that was buried out of my sight in a corner of the
        pit immediately beneath my peephole, the place was deserted by them.
        Except for the pale glow from the handling-machine and the bars and
        patches of white moonlight the pit was in darkness, and, except for
        the clinking of the handling-machine, quite still. That night was a
        beautiful serenity; save for one planet, the moon seemed to have the
        sky to herself. I heard a dog howling, and that familiar sound it was
        that made me listen. Then I heard quite distinctly a booming exactly
        like the sound of great guns. Six distinct reports I counted, and
        after a long interval six again. And that was all.

        CHAPTER FOUR

        THE DEATH OF THE CURATE

        It was on the sixth day of our imprisonment that I peeped for the
        last time, and presently found myself alone. Instead of keeping close
        to me and trying to oust me from the slit, the curate had gone back
        into the scullery. I was struck by a sudden thought. I went back
        quickly and quietly into the scullery. In the darkness I heard the
        curate drinking. I snatched in the darkness, and my fingers caught a
        bottle of burgundy.

        For a few minutes there was a tussle. The bottle struck the floor
        and broke, and I desisted and rose. We stood panting and threatening
        each other. In the end I planted myself between him and the food, and
        told him of my determination to begin a discipline. I divided the
        food in the pantry, into rations to last us ten days. I would not let
        him eat any more that day. In the afternoon he made a feeble effort
        to get at the food. I had been dozing, but in an instant I was awake.
        All day and all night we sat face to face, I weary but resolute, and
        he weeping and complaining of his immediate hunger. It was, I know, a
        night and a day, but to me it seemed--it seems now--an interminable
        length of time.

        And so our widened incompatibility ended at last in open conflict.
        For two vast days we struggled in undertones and wrestling contests.
        There were times when I beat and kicked him madly, times when I
        cajoled and persuaded him, and once I tried to bribe him with the last
        bottle of burgundy, for there was a rain-water pump from which I could
        get water. But neither force nor kindness availed; he was indeed
        beyond reason. He would neither desist from his attacks on the food
        nor from his noisy babbling to himself. The rudimentary precautions
        to keep our imprisonment endurable he would not observe. Slowly I
        began to realise the complete overthrow of his intelligence, to
        perceive that my sole companion in this close and sickly darkness was
        a man insane.

        From certain vague memories I am inclined to think my own mind
        wandered at times. I had strange and hideous dreams whenever I slept.
        It sounds paradoxical, but I am inclined to think that the weakness
        and insanity of the curate warned me, braced me, and kept me a sane
        man.

        On the eighth day he began to talk aloud instead of whispering, and
        nothing I could do would moderate his speech.

        "It is just, O God!" he would say, over and over again. "It is
        just. On me and mine be the punishment laid. We have sinned, we have
        fallen short. There was poverty, sorrow; the poor were trodden in
        the dust, and I held my peace. I preached acceptable folly--my God,
        what folly!--when I should have stood up, though I died for it, and
        called upon them to repent--repent! . . . Oppressors of the poor and
        needy . . . ! The wine press of God!"

        Then he would suddenly revert to the matter of the food I withheld
        from him, praying, begging, weeping, at last threatening. He began to
        raise his voice--I prayed him not to. He perceived a hold on me--he
        threatened he would shout and bring the Martians upon us. For a time
        that scared me; but any concession would have shortened our chance of
        escape beyond estimating. I defied him, although I felt no assurance
        that he might not do this thing. But that day, at any rate, he did
        not. He talked with his voice rising slowly, through the greater part
        of the eighth and ninth days--threats, entreaties, mingled with a
        torrent of half-sane and always frothy repentance for his vacant sham
        of God's service, such as made me pity him. Then he slept awhile, and
        began again with renewed strength, so loudly that I must needs make
        him desist.

        "Be still!" I implored.

        He rose to his knees, for he had been sitting in the darkness near
        the copper.

        "I have been still too long," he said, in a tone that must have
        reached the pit, "and now I must bear my witness. Woe unto this
        unfaithful city! Woe! Woe! Woe! Woe! Woe! To the inhabitants of
        the earth by reason of the other voices of the trumpet----"

        "Shut up!" I said, rising to my feet, and in a terror lest the
        Martians should hear us. "For God's sake----"

        "Nay," shouted the curate, at the top of his voice, standing
        likewise and extending his arms. "Speak! The word of the Lord is
        upon me!"

        In three strides he was at the door leading into the kitchen.

        "I must bear my witness! I go! It has already been too long
        delayed."

        I put out my hand and felt the meat chopper hanging to the wall.
        In a flash I was after him. I was fierce with fear. Before he was
        halfway across the kitchen I had overtaken him. With one last touch
        of humanity I turned the blade back and struck him with the butt. He
        went headlong forward and lay stretched on the ground. I stumbled
        over him and stood panting. He lay still.

        Suddenly I heard a noise without, the run and smash of slipping
        plaster, and the triangular aperture in the wall was darkened. I
        looked up and saw the lower surface of a handling-machine coming
        slowly across the hole. One of its gripping limbs curled amid the
        debris; another limb appeared, feeling its way over the fallen beams.
        I stood petrified, staring. Then I saw through a sort of glass plate
        near the edge of the body the face, as we may call it, and the large
        dark eyes of a Martian, peering, and then a long metallic snake of
        tentacle came feeling slowly through the hole.

        I turned by an effort, stumbled over the curate, and stopped at the
        scullery door. The tentacle was now some way, two yards or more, in
        the room, and twisting and turning, with queer sudden movements, this
        way and that. For a while I stood fascinated by that slow, fitful
        advance. Then, with a faint, hoarse cry, I forced myself across the
        scullery. I trembled violently; I could scarcely stand upright. I
        opened the door of the coal cellar, and stood there in the darkness
        staring at the faintly lit doorway into the kitchen, and listening.
        Had the Martian seen me? What was it doing now?

        Something was moving to and fro there, very quietly; every now and
        then it tapped against the wall, or started on its movements with a
        faint metallic ringing, like the movements of keys on a split-ring.
        Then a heavy body--I knew too well what--was dragged across the floor
        of the kitchen towards the opening. Irresistibly attracted, I crept
        to the door and peeped into the kitchen. In the triangle of bright
        outer sunlight I saw the Martian, in its Briareus of a handling-machine,
        scrutinizing the curate's head. I thought at once that it would infer
        my presence from the mark of the blow I had given him.

        I crept back to the coal cellar, shut the door, and began to cover
        myself up as much as I could, and as noiselessly as possible in the
        darkness, among the firewood and coal therein. Every now and then I
        paused, rigid, to hear if the Martian had thrust its tentacles through
        the opening again.

        Then the faint metallic jingle returned. I traced it slowly
        feeling over the kitchen. Presently I heard it nearer--in the
        scullery, as I judged. I thought that its length might be
        insufficient to reach me. I prayed copiously. It passed, scraping
        faintly across the cellar door. An age of almost intolerable suspense
        intervened; then I heard it fumbling at the latch! It had found the
        door! The Martians understood doors!

        It worried at the catch for a minute, perhaps, and then the door
        opened.

        In the darkness I could just see the thing--like an elephant's
        trunk more than anything else--waving towards me and touching and
        examining the wall, coals, wood and ceiling. It was like a black worm
        swaying its blind head to and fro.

        Once, even, it touched the heel of my boot. I was on the verge of
        screaming; I bit my hand. For a time the tentacle was silent. I
        could have fancied it had been withdrawn. Presently, with an abrupt
        click, it gripped something--I thought it had me!--and seemed to go
        out of the cellar again. For a minute I was not sure. Apparently it
        had taken a lump of coal to examine.

        I seized the opportunity of slightly shifting my position, which
        had become cramped, and then listened. I whispered passionate prayers
        for safety.

        Then I heard the slow, deliberate sound creeping towards me again.
        Slowly, slowly it drew near, scratching against the walls and tapping
        the furniture.

        While I was still doubtful, it rapped smartly against the cellar
        door and closed it. I heard it go into the pantry, and the biscuit-tins
        rattled and a bottle smashed, and then came a heavy bump against
        the cellar door. Then silence that passed into an infinity of
        suspense.

        Had it gone?

        At last I decided that it had.

        It came into the scullery no more; but I lay all the tenth day in
        the close darkness, buried among coals and firewood, not daring even
        to crawl out for the drink for which I craved. It was the eleventh day
        before I ventured so far from my security.

        CHAPTER FIVE

        THE STILLNESS

        My first act before I went into the pantry was to fasten the door
        between the kitchen and the scullery. But the pantry was empty; every
        scrap of food had gone. Apparently, the Martian had taken it all on
        the previous day. At that discovery I despaired for the first time. I
        took no food, or no drink either, on the eleventh or the twelfth day.

        At first my mouth and throat were parched, and my strength ebbed
        sensibly. I sat about in the darkness of the scullery, in a state of
        despondent wretchedness. My mind ran on eating. I thought I had
        become deaf, for the noises of movement I had been accustomed to hear
        from the pit had ceased absolutely. I did not feel strong enough to
        crawl noiselessly to the peephole, or I would have gone there.

        On the twelfth day my throat was so painful that, taking the chance
        of alarming the Martians, I attacked the creaking rain-water pump that
        stood by the sink, and got a couple of glassfuls of blackened and
        tainted rain water. I was greatly refreshed by this, and emboldened
        by the fact that no enquiring tentacle followed the noise of my
        pumping.

        During these days, in a rambling, inconclusive way, I thought much
        of the curate and of the manner of his death.

        On the thirteenth day I drank some more water, and dozed and
        thought disjointedly of eating and of vague impossible plans of
        escape. Whenever I dozed I dreamt of horrible phantasms, of the death
        of the curate, or of sumptuous dinners; but, asleep or awake, I felt a
        keen pain that urged me to drink again and again. The light that came
        into the scullery was no longer grey, but red. To my disordered
        imagination it seemed the colour of blood.

        On the fourteenth day I went into the kitchen, and I was surprised
        to find that the fronds of the red weed had grown right across
        the hole in the wall, turning the half-light of the place into a
        crimson-coloured obscurity.

        It was early on the fifteenth day that I heard a curious, familiar
        sequence of sounds in the kitchen, and, listening, identified it as
        the snuffing and scratching of a dog. Going into the kitchen, I saw a
        dog's nose peering in through a break among the ruddy fronds. This
        greatly surprised me. At the scent of me he barked shortly.

        I thought if I could induce him to come into the place quietly I
        should be able, perhaps, to kill and eat him; and in any case, it
        would be advisable to kill him, lest his actions attracted the
        attention of the Martians.

        I crept forward, saying "Good dog!" very softly; but he suddenly
        withdrew his head and disappeared.

        I listened--I was not deaf--but certainly the pit was still. I
        heard a sound like the flutter of a bird's wings, and a hoarse
        croaking, but that was all.

        For a long while I lay close to the peephole, but not daring to
        move aside the red plants that obscured it. Once or twice I heard a
        faint pitter-patter like the feet of the dog going hither and thither
        on the sand far below me, and there were more birdlike sounds, but
        that was all. At length, encouraged by the silence, I looked out.

        Except in the corner, where a multitude of crows hopped and fought
        over the skeletons of the dead the Martians had consumed, there was
        not a living thing in the pit.

        I stared about me, scarcely believing my eyes. All the machinery
        had gone. Save for the big mound of greyish-blue powder in one
        corner, certain bars of aluminium in another, the black birds, and the
        skeletons of the killed, the place was merely an empty circular pit in
        the sand.

        Slowly I thrust myself out through the red weed, and stood upon the
        mound of rubble. I could see in any direction save behind me, to the
        north, and neither Martians nor sign of Martians were to be seen. The
        pit dropped sheerly from my feet, but a little way along the rubbish
        afforded a practicable slope to the summit of the ruins. My chance of
        escape had come. I began to tremble.

        I hesitated for some time, and then, in a gust of desperate
        resolution, and with a heart that throbbed violently, I scrambled to
        the top of the mound in which I had been buried so long.

        I looked about again. To the northward, too, no Martian was
        visible.

        When I had last seen this part of Sheen in the daylight it had been
        a straggling street of comfortable white and red houses, interspersed
        with abundant shady trees. Now I stood on a mound of smashed
        brickwork, clay, and gravel, over which spread a multitude of red
        cactus-shaped plants, knee-high, without a solitary terrestrial growth
        to dispute their footing. The trees near me were dead and brown, but
        further a network of red thread scaled the still living stems.

        The neighbouring houses had all been wrecked, but none had been
        burned; their walls stood, sometimes to the second story, with smashed
        windows and shattered doors. The red weed grew tumultuously in their
        roofless rooms. Below me was the great pit, with the crows struggling
        for its refuse. A number of other birds hopped about among the ruins.
        Far away I saw a gaunt cat slink crouchingly along a wall, but traces
        of men there were none.

        The day seemed, by contrast with my recent confinement, dazzlingly
        bright, the sky a glowing blue. A gentle breeze kept the red weed
        that covered every scrap of unoccupied ground gently swaying. And oh!
        the sweetness of the air!

        CHAPTER SIX

        THE WORK OF FIFTEEN DAYS

        For some time I stood tottering on the mound regardless of my
        safety. Within that noisome den from which I had emerged I had
        thought with a narrow intensity only of our immediate security. I had
        not realised what had been happening to the world, had not anticipated
        this startling vision of unfamiliar things. I had expected to see
        Sheen in ruins--I found about me the landscape, weird and lurid, of
        another planet.

        For that moment I touched an emotion beyond the common range of
        men, yet one that the poor brutes we dominate know only too well. I
        felt as a rabbit might feel returning to his burrow and suddenly
        confronted by the work of a dozen busy navvies digging the foundations
        of a house. I felt the first inkling of a thing that presently grew
        quite clear in my mind, that oppressed me for many days, a sense of
        dethronement, a persuasion that I was no longer a master, but an
        animal among the animals, under the Martian heel. With us it would be
        as with them, to lurk and watch, to run and hide; the fear and empire
        of man had passed away.

        But so soon as this strangeness had been realised it passed, and my
        dominant motive became the hunger of my long and dismal fast. In the
        direction away from the pit I saw, beyond a red-covered wall, a patch
        of garden ground unburied. This gave me a hint, and I went knee-deep,
        and sometimes neck-deep, in the red weed. The density of the
        weed gave me a reassuring sense of hiding. The wall was some six feet
        high, and when I attempted to clamber it I found I could not lift my
        feet to the crest. So I went along by the side of it, and came to a
        corner and a rockwork that enabled me to get to the top, and tumble
        into the garden I coveted. Here I found some young onions, a couple
        of gladiolus bulbs, and a quantity of immature carrots, all of which I
        secured, and, scrambling over a ruined wall, went on my way through
        scarlet and crimson trees towards Kew--it was like walking through an
        avenue of gigantic blood drops--possessed with two ideas: to get more
        food, and to limp, as soon and as far as my strength permitted, out of
        this accursed unearthly region of the pit.

        Some way farther, in a grassy place, was a group of mushrooms which
        also I devoured, and then I came upon a brown sheet of flowing shallow
        water, where meadows used to be. These fragments of nourishment served
        only to whet my hunger. At first I was surprised at this flood in a
        hot, dry summer, but afterwards I discovered that it was caused by the
        tropical exuberance of the red weed. Directly this extraordinary
        growth encountered water it straightway became gigantic and of
        unparalleled fecundity. Its seeds were simply poured down into the
        water of the Wey and Thames, and its swiftly growing and Titanic water
        fronds speedily choked both those rivers.

        At Putney, as I afterwards saw, the bridge was almost lost in a
        tangle of this weed, and at Richmond, too, the Thames water poured in
        a broad and shallow stream across the meadows of Hampton and
        Twickenham. As the water spread the weed followed them, until the
        ruined villas of the Thames valley were for a time lost in this red
        swamp, whose margin I explored, and much of the desolation the
        Martians had caused was concealed.

        In the end the red weed succumbed almost as quickly as it had
        spread. A cankering disease, due, it is believed, to the action of
        certain bacteria, presently seized upon it. Now by the action of
        natural selection, all terrestrial plants have acquired a resisting
        power against bacterial diseases--they never succumb without a severe
        struggle, but the red weed rotted like a thing already dead. The
        fronds became bleached, and then shrivelled and brittle. They broke
        off at the least touch, and the waters that had stimulated their early
        growth carried their last vestiges out to sea.

        My first act on coming to this water was, of course, to slake my
        thirst. I drank a great deal of it and, moved by an impulse, gnawed
        some fronds of red weed; but they were watery, and had a sickly,
        metallic taste. I found the water was sufficiently shallow for me to
        wade securely, although the red weed impeded my feet a little; but the
        flood evidently got deeper towards the river, and I turned back to
        Mortlake. I managed to make out the road by means of occasional ruins
        of its villas and fences and lamps, and so presently I got out of this
        spate and made my way to the hill going up towards Roehampton and came
        out on Putney Common.

        Here the scenery changed from the strange and unfamiliar to the
        wreckage of the familiar: patches of ground exhibited the devastation
        of a cyclone, and in a few score yards I would come upon perfectly
        undisturbed spaces, houses with their blinds trimly drawn and doors
        closed, as if they had been left for a day by the owners, or as if
        their inhabitants slept within. The red weed was less abundant; the
        tall trees along the lane were free from the red creeper. I hunted
        for food among the trees, finding nothing, and I also raided a couple
        of silent houses, but they had already been broken into and ransacked.
        I rested for the remainder of the daylight in a shrubbery, being, in
        my enfeebled condition, too fatigued to push on.

        All this time I saw no human beings, and no signs of the Martians.
        I encountered a couple of hungry-looking dogs, but both hurried
        circuitously away from the advances I made them. Near Roehampton I
        had seen two human skeletons--not bodies, but skeletons, picked
        clean--and in the wood by me I found the crushed and scattered bones
        of several cats and rabbits and the skull of a sheep. But though I
        gnawed parts of these in my mouth, there was nothing to be got from
        them.

        After sunset I struggled on along the road towards Putney, where I
        think the Heat-Ray must have been used for some reason. And in the
        garden beyond Roehampton I got a quantity of immature potatoes,
        sufficient to stay my hunger. From this garden one looked down upon
        Putney and the river. The aspect of the place in the dusk was
        singularly desolate: blackened trees, blackened, desolate ruins, and
        down the hill the sheets of the flooded river, red-tinged with the
        weed. And over all--silence. It filled me with indescribable terror
        to think how swiftly that desolating change had come.

        For a time I believed that mankind had been swept out of existence,
        and that I stood there alone, the last man left alive. Hard by the
        top of Putney Hill I came upon another skeleton, with the arms
        dislocated and removed several yards from the rest of the body. As I
        proceeded I became more and more convinced that the extermination of
        mankind was, save for such stragglers as myself, already accomplished
        in this part of the world. The Martians, I thought, had gone on and
        left the country desolated, seeking food elsewhere. Perhaps even now
        they were destroying Berlin or Paris, or it might be they had gone
        northward.

        CHAPTER SEVEN

        THE MAN ON PUTNEY HILL

        I spent that night in the inn that stands at the top of Putney
        Hill, sleeping in a made bed for the first time since my flight to
        Leatherhead. I will not tell the needless trouble I had breaking into
        that house--afterwards I found the front door was on the latch--nor
        how I ransacked every room for food, until just on the verge of
        despair, in what seemed to me to be a servant's bedroom, I found a
        rat-gnawed crust and two tins of pineapple. The place had been
        already searched and emptied. In the bar I afterwards found some
        biscuits and sandwiches that had been overlooked. The latter I could
        not eat, they were too rotten, but the former not only stayed my
        hunger, but filled my pockets. I lit no lamps, fearing some Martian
        might come beating that part of London for food in the night. Before
        I went to bed I had an interval of restlessness, and prowled from
        window to window, peering out for some sign of these monsters. I
        slept little. As I lay in bed I found myself thinking consecutively--a
        thing I do not remember to have done since my last argument with the
        curate. During all the intervening time my mental condition had been
        a hurrying succession of vague emotional states or a sort of stupid
        receptivity. But in the night my brain, reinforced, I suppose, by the
        food I had eaten, grew clear again, and I thought.

        Three things struggled for possession of my mind: the killing of
        the curate, the whereabouts of the Martians, and the possible fate of
        my wife. The former gave me no sensation of horror or remorse to
        recall; I saw it simply as a thing done, a memory infinitely
        disagreeable but quite without the quality of remorse. I saw myself
        then as I see myself now, driven step by step towards that hasty blow,
        the creature of a sequence of accidents leading inevitably to that. I
        felt no condemnation; yet the memory, static, unprogressive, haunted
        me. In the silence of the night, with that sense of the nearness of
        God that sometimes comes into the stillness and the darkness, I stood
        my trial, my only trial, for that moment of wrath and fear. I
        retraced every step of our conversation from the moment when I had
        found him crouching beside me, heedless of my thirst, and pointing to
        the fire and smoke that streamed up from the ruins of Weybridge. We
        had been incapable of co-operation--grim chance had taken no heed of
        that. Had I foreseen, I should have left him at Halliford. But I did
        not foresee; and crime is to foresee and do. And I set this down as I
        have set all this story down, as it was. There were no witnesses--all
        these things I might have concealed. But I set it down, and the
        reader must form his judgment as he will.

        And when, by an effort, I had set aside that picture of a prostrate
        body, I faced the problem of the Martians and the fate of my wife. For
        the former I had no data; I could imagine a hundred things, and so,
        unhappily, I could for the latter. And suddenly that night became
        terrible. I found myself sitting up in bed, staring at the dark. I
        found myself praying that the Heat-Ray might have suddenly and
        painlessly struck her out of being. Since the night of my return from
        Leatherhead I had not prayed. I had uttered prayers, fetish prayers,
        had prayed as heathens mutter charms when I was in extremity; but now
        I prayed indeed, pleading steadfastly and sanely, face to face with
        the darkness of God. Strange night! Strangest in this, that so soon
        as dawn had come, I, who had talked with God, crept out of the house
        like a rat leaving its hiding place--a creature scarcely larger, an
        inferior animal, a thing that for any passing whim of our masters
        might be hunted and killed. Perhaps they also prayed confidently to
        God. Surely, if we have learned nothing else, this war has taught us
        pity--pity for those witless souls that suffer our dominion.

        The morning was bright and fine, and the eastern sky glowed pink,
        and was fretted with little golden clouds. In the road that runs from
        the top of Putney Hill to Wimbledon was a number of poor vestiges of
        the panic torrent that must have poured Londonward on the Sunday night
        after the fighting began. There was a little two-wheeled cart
        inscribed with the name of Thomas Lobb, Greengrocer, New Malden, with
        a smashed wheel and an abandoned tin trunk; there was a straw hat
        trampled into the now hardened mud, and at the top of West Hill a lot
        of blood-stained glass about the overturned water trough. My
        movements were languid, my plans of the vaguest. I had an idea of
        going to Leatherhead, though I knew that there I had the poorest
        chance of finding my wife. Certainly, unless death had overtaken them
        suddenly, my cousins and she would have fled thence; but it seemed to
        me I might find or learn there whither the Surrey people had fled. I
        knew I wanted to find my wife, that my heart ached for her and the
        world of men, but I had no clear idea how the finding might be done. I
        was also sharply aware now of my intense loneliness. From the corner
        I went, under cover of a thicket of trees and bushes, to the edge of
        Wimbledon Common, stretching wide and far.

        That dark expanse was lit in patches by yellow gorse and broom;
        there was no red weed to be seen, and as I prowled, hesitating, on the
        verge of the open, the sun rose, flooding it all with light and
        vitality. I came upon a busy swarm of little frogs in a swampy place
        among the trees. I stopped to look at them, drawing a lesson from
        their stout resolve to live. And presently, turning suddenly, with an
        odd feeling of being watched, I beheld something crouching amid a
        clump of bushes. I stood regarding this. I made a step towards it,
        and it rose up and became a man armed with a cutlass. I approached
        him slowly. He stood silent and motionless, regarding me.

        As I drew nearer I perceived he was dressed in clothes as dusty and
        filthy as my own; he looked, indeed, as though he had been dragged
        through a culvert. Nearer, I distinguished the green slime of ditches
        mixing with the pale drab of dried clay and shiny, coaly patches. His
        black hair fell over his eyes, and his face was dark and dirty and
        sunken, so that at first I did not recognise him. There was a red cut
        across the lower part of his face.

        "Stop!" he cried, when I was within ten yards of him, and I
        stopped. His voice was hoarse. "Where do you come from?" he said.

        I thought, surveying him.

        "I come from Mortlake," I said. "I was buried near the pit the
        Martians made about their cylinder. I have worked my way out and
        escaped."

        "There is no food about here," he said. "This is my country. All
        this hill down to the river, and back to Clapham, and up to the edge
        of the common. There is only food for one. Which way are you going?"

        I answered slowly.

        "I don't know," I said. "I have been buried in the ruins of a
        house thirteen or fourteen days. I don't know what has happened."

        He looked at me doubtfully, then started, and looked with a changed
        expression.

        "I've no wish to stop about here," said I. "I think I shall go to
        Leatherhead, for my wife was there."

        He shot out a pointing finger.

        "It is you," said he; "the man from Woking. And you weren't killed
        at Weybridge?"

        I recognised him at the same moment.

        "You are the artilleryman who came into my garden."

        "Good luck!" he said. "We are lucky ones! Fancy _you_!" He put out
        a hand, and I took it. "I crawled up a drain," he said. "But they
        didn't kill everyone. And after they went away I got off towards
        Walton across the fields. But---- It's not sixteen days altogether--and
        your hair is grey." He looked over his shoulder suddenly. "Only
        a rook," he said. "One gets to know that birds have shadows these
        days. This is a bit open. Let us crawl under those bushes and talk."

        "Have you seen any Martians?" I said. "Since I crawled out----"

        "They've gone away across London," he said. "I guess they've got a
        bigger camp there. Of a night, all over there, Hampstead way, the sky
        is alive with their lights. It's like a great city, and in the glare
        you can just see them moving. By daylight you can't. But nearer--I
        haven't seen them--" (he counted on his fingers) "five days. Then I
        saw a couple across Hammersmith way carrying something big. And the
        night before last"--he stopped and spoke impressively--"it was just a
        matter of lights, but it was something up in the air. I believe
        they've built a flying-machine, and are learning to fly."

        I stopped, on hands and knees, for we had come to the bushes.

        "Fly!"

        "Yes," he said, "fly."

        I went on into a little bower, and sat down.

        "It is all over with humanity," I said. "If they can do that they
        will simply go round the world."

        He nodded.

        "They will. But---- It will relieve things over here a bit. And
        besides----" He looked at me. "Aren't you satisfied it _is_ up with
        humanity? I am. We're down; we're beat."

        I stared. Strange as it may seem, I had not arrived at this fact--a
        fact perfectly obvious so soon as he spoke. I had still held a
        vague hope; rather, I had kept a lifelong habit of mind. He repeated
        his words, "We're beat." They carried absolute conviction.

        "It's all over," he said. "They've lost _one_--just _one_. And they've
        made their footing good and crippled the greatest power in the world.
        They've walked over us. The death of that one at Weybridge was an
        accident. And these are only pioneers. They kept on coming. These
        green stars--I've seen none these five or six days, but I've no doubt
        they're falling somewhere every night. Nothing's to be done. We're
        under! We're beat!"

        I made him no answer. I sat staring before me, trying in vain to
        devise some countervailing thought.

        "This isn't a war," said the artilleryman. "It never was a war,
        any more than there's war between man and ants."

        Suddenly I recalled the night in the observatory.

        "After the tenth shot they fired no more--at least, until the first
        cylinder came."

        "How do you know?" said the artilleryman. I explained. He thought.
        "Something wrong with the gun," he said. "But what if there is?
        They'll get it right again. And even if there's a delay, how can it
        alter the end? It's just men and ants. There's the ants builds their
        cities, live their lives, have wars, revolutions, until the men want
        them out of the way, and then they go out of the way. That's what we
        are now--just ants. Only----"

        "Yes," I said.

        "We're eatable ants."

        We sat looking at each other.

        "And what will they do with us?" I said.

        "That's what I've been thinking," he said; "that's what I've been
        thinking. After Weybridge I went south--thinking. I saw what was up.
        Most of the people were hard at it squealing and exciting themselves.
        But I'm not so fond of squealing. I've been in sight of death once or
        twice; I'm not an ornamental soldier, and at the best and worst,
        death--it's just death. And it's the man that keeps on thinking comes
        through. I saw everyone tracking away south. Says I, 'Food won't
        last this way,' and I turned right back. I went for the Martians like
        a sparrow goes for man. All round"--he waved a hand to the
        horizon--"they're starving in heaps, bolting, treading on each other.
        . . ."

        He saw my face, and halted awkwardly.

        "No doubt lots who had money have gone away to France," he said. He
        seemed to hesitate whether to apologise, met my eyes, and went on:
        "There's food all about here. Canned things in shops; wines, spirits,
        mineral waters; and the water mains and drains are empty. Well, I was
        telling you what I was thinking. 'Here's intelligent things,' I said,
        'and it seems they want us for food. First, they'll smash us up--ships,
        machines, guns, cities, all the order and organisation. All
        that will go. If we were the size of ants we might pull through. But
        we're not. It's all too bulky to stop. That's the first certainty.'
        Eh?"

        I assented.

        "It is; I've thought it out. Very well, then--next; at present
        we're caught as we're wanted. A Martian has only to go a few miles to
        get a crowd on the run. And I saw one, one day, out by Wandsworth,
        picking houses to pieces and routing among the wreckage. But they
        won't keep on doing that. So soon as they've settled all our guns and
        ships, and smashed our railways, and done all the things they are
        doing over there, they will begin catching us systematic, picking the
        best and storing us in cages and things. That's what they will start
        doing in a bit. Lord! They haven't begun on us yet. Don't you see
        that?"

        "Not begun!" I exclaimed.

        "Not begun. All that's happened so far is through our not having
        the sense to keep quiet--worrying them with guns and such foolery. And
        losing our heads, and rushing off in crowds to where there wasn't any
        more safety than where we were. They don't want to bother us yet.
        They're making their things--making all the things they couldn't bring
        with them, getting things ready for the rest of their people. Very
        likely that's why the cylinders have stopped for a bit, for fear of
        hitting those who are here. And instead of our rushing about blind,
        on the howl, or getting dynamite on the chance of busting them up,
        we've got to fix ourselves up according to the new state of affairs.
        That's how I figure it out. It isn't quite according to what a man
        wants for his species, but it's about what the facts point to. And
        that's the principle I acted upon. Cities, nations, civilisation,
        progress--it's all over. That game's up. We're beat."

        "But if that is so, what is there to live for?"

        The artilleryman looked at me for a moment.

        "There won't be any more blessed concerts for a million years or
        so; there won't be any Royal Academy of Arts, and no nice little feeds
        at restaurants. If it's amusement you're after, I reckon the game is
        up. If you've got any drawing-room manners or a dislike to eating
        peas with a knife or dropping aitches, you'd better chuck 'em away.
        They ain't no further use."

        "You mean----"

        "I mean that men like me are going on living--for the sake of the
        breed. I tell you, I'm grim set on living. And if I'm not mistaken,
        you'll show what insides _you've_ got, too, before long. We aren't
        going to be exterminated. And I don't mean to be caught either, and
        tamed and fattened and bred like a thundering ox. Ugh! Fancy those
        brown creepers!"

        "You don't mean to say----"

        "I do. I'm going on, under their feet. I've got it planned; I've
        thought it out. We men are beat. We don't know enough. We've got to
        learn before we've got a chance. And we've got to live and keep
        independent while we learn. See! That's what has to be done."

        I stared, astonished, and stirred profoundly by the man's
        resolution.

        "Great God!" cried I. "But you are a man indeed!" And suddenly I
        gripped his hand.

        "Eh!" he said, with his eyes shining. "I've thought it out, eh?"

        "Go on," I said.

        "Well, those who mean to escape their catching must get ready. I'm
        getting ready. Mind you, it isn't all of us that are made for wild
        beasts; and that's what it's got to be. That's why I watched you. I
        had my doubts. You're slender. I didn't know that it was you, you
        see, or just how you'd been buried. All these--the sort of people
        that lived in these houses, and all those damn little clerks that used
        to live down that way--they'd be no good. They haven't any spirit in
        them--no proud dreams and no proud lusts; and a man who hasn't one or
        the other--Lord! What is he but funk and precautions? They just used
        to skedaddle off to work--I've seen hundreds of 'em, bit of breakfast
        in hand, running wild and shining to catch their little season-ticket
        train, for fear they'd get dismissed if they didn't; working at
        businesses they were afraid to take the trouble to understand;
        skedaddling back for fear they wouldn't be in time for dinner; keeping
        indoors after dinner for fear of the back streets, and sleeping with
        the wives they married, not because they wanted them, but because they
        had a bit of money that would make for safety in their one little
        miserable skedaddle through the world. Lives insured and a bit
        invested for fear of accidents. And on Sundays--fear of the
        hereafter. As if hell was built for rabbits! Well, the Martians will
        just be a godsend to these. Nice roomy cages, fattening food, careful
        breeding, no worry. After a week or so chasing about the fields and
        lands on empty stomachs, they'll come and be caught cheerful. They'll
        be quite glad after a bit. They'll wonder what people did before
        there were Martians to take care of them. And the bar loafers, and
        mashers, and singers--I can imagine them. I can imagine them," he
        said, with a sort of sombre gratification. "There'll be any amount of
        sentiment and religion loose among them. There's hundreds of things I
        saw with my eyes that I've only begun to see clearly these last few
        days. There's lots will take things as they are--fat and stupid; and
        lots will be worried by a sort of feeling that it's all wrong, and
        that they ought to be doing something. Now whenever things are so
        that a lot of people feel they ought to be doing something, the weak,
        and those who go weak with a lot of complicated thinking, always make
        for a sort of do-nothing religion, very pious and superior, and
        submit to persecution and the will of the Lord. Very likely you've
        seen the same thing. It's energy in a gale of funk, and turned clean
        inside out. These cages will be full of psalms and hymns and piety.
        And those of a less simple sort will work in a bit of--what is
        it?--eroticism."

        He paused.

        "Very likely these Martians will make pets of some of them; train
        them to do tricks--who knows?--get sentimental over the pet boy who
        grew up and had to be killed. And some, maybe, they will train to
        hunt us."

        "No," I cried, "that's impossible! No human being----"

        "What's the good of going on with such lies?" said the
        artilleryman. "There's men who'd do it cheerful. What nonsense to
        pretend there isn't!"

        And I succumbed to his conviction.

        "If they come after me," he said; "Lord, if they come after me!"
        and subsided into a grim meditation.

        I sat contemplating these things. I could find nothing to bring
        against this man's reasoning. In the days before the invasion no one
        would have questioned my intellectual superiority to his--I, a
        professed and recognised writer on philosophical themes, and he, a
        common soldier; and yet he had already formulated a situation that I
        had scarcely realised.

        "What are you doing?" I said presently. "What plans have you
        made?"

        He hesitated.

        "Well, it's like this," he said. "What have we to do? We have to
        invent a sort of life where men can live and breed, and be
        sufficiently secure to bring the children up. Yes--wait a bit, and
        I'll make it clearer what I think ought to be done. The tame ones
        will go like all tame beasts; in a few generations they'll be big,
        beautiful, rich-blooded, stupid--rubbish! The risk is that we who keep
        wild will go savage--degenerate into a sort of big, savage rat. . . .
        You see, how I mean to live is underground. I've been thinking about
        the drains. Of course those who don't know drains think horrible
        things; but under this London are miles and miles--hundreds of
        miles--and a few days rain and London empty will leave them sweet and
        clean. The main drains are big enough and airy enough for anyone.
        Then there's cellars, vaults, stores, from which bolting passages may
        be made to the drains. And the railway tunnels and subways. Eh? You
        begin to see? And we form a band--able-bodied, clean-minded men.
        We're not going to pick up any rubbish that drifts in. Weaklings
        go out again."

        "As you meant me to go?"

        "Well--I parleyed, didn't I?"

        "We won't quarrel about that. Go on."

        "Those who stop obey orders. Able-bodied, clean-minded women we
        want also--mothers and teachers. No lackadaisical ladies--no blasted
        rolling eyes. We can't have any weak or silly. Life is real again,
        and the useless and cumbersome and mischievous have to die. They
        ought to die. They ought to be willing to die. It's a sort of
        disloyalty, after all, to live and taint the race. And they can't be
        happy. Moreover, dying's none so dreadful; it's the funking makes it
        bad. And in all those places we shall gather. Our district will be
        London. And we may even be able to keep a watch, and run about in the
        open when the Martians keep away. Play cricket, perhaps. That's how
        we shall save the race. Eh? It's a possible thing? But saving the
        race is nothing in itself. As I say, that's only being rats. It's
        saving our knowledge and adding to it is the thing. There men like
        you come in. There's books, there's models. We must make great safe
        places down deep, and get all the books we can; not novels and poetry
        swipes, but ideas, science books. That's where men like you come in.
        We must go to the British Museum and pick all those books through.
        Especially we must keep up our science--learn more. We must watch
        these Martians. Some of us must go as spies. When it's all working,
        perhaps I will. Get caught, I mean. And the great thing is, we must
        leave the Martians alone. We mustn't even steal. If we get in their
        way, we clear out. We must show them we mean no harm. Yes, I know.
        But they're intelligent things, and they won't hunt us down if they
        have all they want, and think we're just harmless vermin."

        The artilleryman paused and laid a brown hand upon my arm.

        "After all, it may not be so much we may have to learn before--Just
        imagine this: four or five of their fighting machines suddenly
        starting off--Heat-Rays right and left, and not a Martian in 'em. Not
        a Martian in 'em, but men--men who have learned the way how. It may
        be in my time, even--those men. Fancy having one of them lovely
        things, with its Heat-Ray wide and free! Fancy having it in control!
        What would it matter if you smashed to smithereens at the end of the
        run, after a bust like that? I reckon the Martians'll open their
        beautiful eyes! Can't you see them, man? Can't you see them
        hurrying, hurrying--puffing and blowing and hooting to their other
        mechanical affairs? Something out of gear in every case. And swish,
        bang, rattle, swish! Just as they are fumbling over it, _swish_ comes
        the Heat-Ray, and, behold! man has come back to his own."

        For a while the imaginative daring of the artilleryman, and the
        tone of assurance and courage he assumed, completely dominated my
        mind. I believed unhesitatingly both in his forecast of human destiny
        and in the practicability of his astonishing scheme, and the reader
        who thinks me susceptible and foolish must contrast his position,
        reading steadily with all his thoughts about his subject, and mine,
        crouching fearfully in the bushes and listening, distracted by
        apprehension. We talked in this manner through the early morning
        time, and later crept out of the bushes, and, after scanning the sky
        for Martians, hurried precipitately to the house on Putney Hill where
        he had made his lair. It was the coal cellar of the place, and when I
        saw the work he had spent a week upon--it was a burrow scarcely ten
        yards long, which he designed to reach to the main drain on Putney
        Hill--I had my first inkling of the gulf between his dreams and his
        powers. Such a hole I could have dug in a day. But I believed in him
        sufficiently to work with him all that morning until past midday at
        his digging. We had a garden barrow and shot the earth we removed
        against the kitchen range. We refreshed ourselves with a tin of
        mock-turtle soup and wine from the neighbouring pantry. I found a
        curious relief from the aching strangeness of the world in this steady
        labour. As we worked, I turned his project over in my mind, and
        presently objections and doubts began to arise; but I worked there all
        the morning, so glad was I to find myself with a purpose again. After
        working an hour I began to speculate on the distance one had to go
        before the cloaca was reached, the chances we had of missing it
        altogether. My immediate trouble was why we should dig this long
        tunnel, when it was possible to get into the drain at once down one of
        the manholes, and work back to the house. It seemed to me, too, that
        the house was inconveniently chosen, and required a needless length of
        tunnel. And just as I was beginning to face these things, the
        artilleryman stopped digging, and looked at me.

        "We're working well," he said. He put down his spade. "Let us
        knock off a bit" he said. "I think it's time we reconnoitred from the
        roof of the house."

        I was for going on, and after a little hesitation he resumed his
        spade; and then suddenly I was struck by a thought. I stopped, and so
        did he at once.

        "Why were you walking about the common," I said, "instead of being
        here?"

        "Taking the air," he said. "I was coming back. It's safer by
        night."

        "But the work?"

        "Oh, one can't always work," he said, and in a flash I saw the man
        plain. He hesitated, holding his spade. "We ought to reconnoitre
        now," he said, "because if any come near they may hear the spades and
        drop upon us unawares."

        I was no longer disposed to object. We went together to the roof
        and stood on a ladder peeping out of the roof door. No Martians were
        to be seen, and we ventured out on the tiles, and slipped down under
        shelter of the parapet.

        From this position a shrubbery hid the greater portion of Putney,
        but we could see the river below, a bubbly mass of red weed, and the
        low parts of Lambeth flooded and red. The red creeper swarmed up the
        trees about the old palace, and their branches stretched gaunt and
        dead, and set with shrivelled leaves, from amid its clusters. It was
        strange how entirely dependent both these things were upon flowing
        water for their propagation. About us neither had gained a footing;
        laburnums, pink mays, snowballs, and trees of arbor-vitae, rose out of
        laurels and hydrangeas, green and brilliant into the sunlight. Beyond
        Kensington dense smoke was rising, and that and a blue haze hid the
        northward hills.

        The artilleryman began to tell me of the sort of people who still
        remained in London.

        "One night last week," he said, "some fools got the electric light
        in order, and there was all Regent Street and the Circus ablaze,
        crowded with painted and ragged drunkards, men and women, dancing and
        shouting till dawn. A man who was there told me. And as the day came
        they became aware of a fighting-machine standing near by the Langham
        and looking down at them. Heaven knows how long he had been there.
        It must have given some of them a nasty turn. He came down the road
        towards them, and picked up nearly a hundred too drunk or frightened
        to run away."

        Grotesque gleam of a time no history will ever fully describe!

        From that, in answer to my questions, he came round to his
        grandiose plans again. He grew enthusiastic. He talked so eloquently
        of the possibility of capturing a fighting-machine that I more than
        half believed in him again. But now that I was beginning to
        understand something of his quality, I could divine the stress he laid
        on doing nothing precipitately. And I noted that now there was no
        question that he personally was to capture and fight the great
        machine.

        After a time we went down to the cellar. Neither of us seemed
        disposed to resume digging, and when he suggested a meal, I was
        nothing loath. He became suddenly very generous, and when we had
        eaten he went away and returned with some excellent cigars. We lit
        these, and his optimism glowed. He was inclined to regard my coming
        as a great occasion.

        "There's some champagne in the cellar," he said.

        "We can dig better on this Thames-side burgundy," said I.

        "No," said he; "I am host today. Champagne! Great God! We've a
        heavy enough task before us! Let us take a rest and gather strength
        while we may. Look at these blistered hands!"

        And pursuant to this idea of a holiday, he insisted upon playing
        cards after we had eaten. He taught me euchre, and after dividing
        London between us, I taking the northern side and he the southern, we
        played for parish points. Grotesque and foolish as this will seem to
        the sober reader, it is absolutely true, and what is more remarkable,
        I found the card game and several others we played extremely
        interesting.

        Strange mind of man! that, with our species upon the edge of
        extermination or appalling degradation, with no clear prospect before
        us but the chance of a horrible death, we could sit following the
        chance of this painted pasteboard, and playing the "joker" with vivid
        delight. Afterwards he taught me poker, and I beat him at three tough
        chess games. When dark came we decided to take the risk, and lit a
        lamp.

        After an interminable string of games, we supped, and the
        artilleryman finished the champagne. We went on smoking the cigars.
        He was no longer the energetic regenerator of his species I had
        encountered in the morning. He was still optimistic, but it was a
        less kinetic, a more thoughtful optimism. I remember he wound up with
        my health, proposed in a speech of small variety and considerable
        intermittence. I took a cigar, and went upstairs to look at the
        lights of which he had spoken that blazed so greenly along the
        Highgate hills.

        At first I stared unintelligently across the London valley. The
        northern hills were shrouded in darkness; the fires near Kensington
        glowed redly, and now and then an orange-red tongue of flame flashed
        up and vanished in the deep blue night. All the rest of London
        was black. Then, nearer, I perceived a strange light, a pale,
        violet-purple fluorescent glow, quivering under the night breeze. For
        a space I could not understand it, and then I knew that it must be
        the red weed from which this faint irradiation proceeded. With that
        realisation my dormant sense of wonder, my sense of the proportion of
        things, awoke again. I glanced from that to Mars, red and clear,
        glowing high in the west, and then gazed long and earnestly at the
        darkness of Hampstead and Highgate.

        I remained a very long time upon the roof, wondering at the
        grotesque changes of the day. I recalled my mental states from the
        midnight prayer to the foolish card-playing. I had a violent
        revulsion of feeling. I remember I flung away the cigar with a
        certain wasteful symbolism. My folly came to me with glaring
        exaggeration. I seemed a traitor to my wife and to my kind; I was
        filled with remorse. I resolved to leave this strange undisciplined
        dreamer of great things to his drink and gluttony, and to go on into
        London. There, it seemed to me, I had the best chance of learning
        what the Martians and my fellowmen were doing. I was still upon the
        roof when the late moon rose.

        CHAPTER EIGHT

        DEAD LONDON

        After I had parted from the artilleryman, I went down the hill, and
        by the High Street across the bridge to Fulham. The red weed was
        tumultuous at that time, and nearly choked the bridge roadway; but its
        fronds were already whitened in patches by the spreading disease that
        presently removed it so swiftly.

        At the corner of the lane that runs to Putney Bridge station I
        found a man lying. He was as black as a sweep with the black dust,
        alive, but helplessly and speechlessly drunk. I could get nothing
        from him but curses and furious lunges at my head. I think I should
        have stayed by him but for the brutal expression of his face.

        There was black dust along the roadway from the bridge onwards, and
        it grew thicker in Fulham. The streets were horribly quiet. I got
        food--sour, hard, and mouldy, but quite eatable--in a baker's shop
        here. Some way towards Walham Green the streets became clear of
        powder, and I passed a white terrace of houses on fire; the noise of
        the burning was an absolute relief. Going on towards Brompton, the
        streets were quiet again.

        Here I came once more upon the black powder in the streets and upon
        dead bodies. I saw altogether about a dozen in the length of the
        Fulham Road. They had been dead many days, so that I hurried quickly
        past them. The black powder covered them over, and softened their
        outlines. One or two had been disturbed by dogs.

        Where there was no black powder, it was curiously like a Sunday in
        the City, with the closed shops, the houses locked up and the blinds
        drawn, the desertion, and the stillness. In some places plunderers
        had been at work, but rarely at other than the provision and wine
        shops. A jeweller's window had been broken open in one place, but
        apparently the thief had been disturbed, and a number of gold chains
        and a watch lay scattered on the pavement. I did not trouble to touch
        them. Farther on was a tattered woman in a heap on a doorstep; the
        hand that hung over her knee was gashed and bled down her rusty brown
        dress, and a smashed magnum of champagne formed a pool across the
        pavement. She seemed asleep, but she was dead.

        The farther I penetrated into London, the profounder grew the
        stillness. But it was not so much the stillness of death--it was the
        stillness of suspense, of expectation. At any time the destruction
        that had already singed the northwestern borders of the metropolis,
        and had annihilated Ealing and Kilburn, might strike among these
        houses and leave them smoking ruins. It was a city condemned and
        derelict. . . .

        In South Kensington the streets were clear of dead and of black
        powder. It was near South Kensington that I first heard the howling.
        It crept almost imperceptibly upon my senses. It was a sobbing
        alternation of two notes, "Ulla, ulla, ulla, ulla," keeping on
        perpetually. When I passed streets that ran northward it grew in
        volume, and houses and buildings seemed to deaden and cut it off
        again. It came in a full tide down Exhibition Road. I stopped,
        staring towards Kensington Gardens, wondering at this strange, remote
        wailing. It was as if that mighty desert of houses had found a voice
        for its fear and solitude.

        "Ulla, ulla, ulla, ulla," wailed that superhuman note--great waves
        of sound sweeping down the broad, sunlit roadway, between the tall
        buildings on each side. I turned northwards, marvelling, towards the
        iron gates of Hyde Park. I had half a mind to break into the Natural
        History Museum and find my way up to the summits of the towers, in
        order to see across the park. But I decided to keep to the ground,
        where quick hiding was possible, and so went on up the Exhibition
        Road. All the large mansions on each side of the road were empty and
        still, and my footsteps echoed against the sides of the houses. At
        the top, near the park gate, I came upon a strange sight--a bus
        overturned, and the skeleton of a horse picked clean. I puzzled over
        this for a time, and then went on to the bridge over the Serpentine.
        The voice grew stronger and stronger, though I could see nothing above
        the housetops on the north side of the park, save a haze of smoke to
        the northwest.

        "Ulla, ulla, ulla, ulla," cried the voice, coming, as it seemed to
        me, from the district about Regent's Park. The desolating cry worked
        upon my mind. The mood that had sustained me passed. The wailing
        took possession of me. I found I was intensely weary, footsore, and
        now again hungry and thirsty.

        It was already past noon. Why was I wandering alone in this city
        of the dead? Why was I alone when all London was lying in state, and
        in its black shroud? I felt intolerably lonely. My mind ran on old
        friends that I had forgotten for years. I thought of the poisons in
        the chemists' shops, of the liquors the wine merchants stored; I
        recalled the two sodden creatures of despair, who so far as I knew,
        shared the city with myself. . . .

        I came into Oxford Street by the Marble Arch, and here again were
        black powder and several bodies, and an evil, ominous smell from the
        gratings of the cellars of some of the houses. I grew very thirsty
        after the heat of my long walk. With infinite trouble I managed to
        break into a public-house and get food and drink. I was weary after
        eating, and went into the parlour behind the bar, and slept on a black
        horsehair sofa I found there.

        I awoke to find that dismal howling still in my ears, "Ulla, ulla,
        ulla, ulla." It was now dusk, and after I had routed out some
        biscuits and a cheese in the bar--there was a meat safe, but it
        contained nothing but maggots--I wandered on through the silent
        residential squares to Baker Street--Portman Square is the only one I
        can name--and so came out at last upon Regent's Park. And as I
        emerged from the top of Baker Street, I saw far away over the trees in
        the clearness of the sunset the hood of the Martian giant from which
        this howling proceeded. I was not terrified. I came upon him as if
        it were a matter of course. I watched him for some time, but he did
        not move. He appeared to be standing and yelling, for no reason that
        I could discover.

        I tried to formulate a plan of action. That perpetual sound of
        "Ulla, ulla, ulla, ulla," confused my mind. Perhaps I was too tired
        to be very fearful. Certainly I was more curious to know the reason
        of this monotonous crying than afraid. I turned back away from the
        park and struck into Park Road, intending to skirt the park, went
        along under the shelter of the terraces, and got a view of this
        stationary, howling Martian from the direction of St. John's Wood. A
        couple of hundred yards out of Baker Street I heard a yelping chorus,
        and saw, first a dog with a piece of putrescent red meat in his jaws
        coming headlong towards me, and then a pack of starving mongrels in
        pursuit of him. He made a wide curve to avoid me, as though he feared
        I might prove a fresh competitor. As the yelping died away down the
        silent road, the wailing sound of "Ulla, ulla, ulla, ulla," reasserted
        itself.

        I came upon the wrecked handling-machine halfway to St. John's Wood
        station. At first I thought a house had fallen across the road. It
        was only as I clambered among the ruins that I saw, with a start, this
        mechanical Samson lying, with its tentacles bent and smashed and
        twisted, among the ruins it had made. The forepart was shattered. It
        seemed as if it had driven blindly straight at the house, and had been
        overwhelmed in its overthrow. It seemed to me then that this might
        have happened by a handling-machine escaping from the guidance of its
        Martian. I could not clamber among the ruins to see it, and the
        twilight was now so far advanced that the blood with which its seat
        was smeared, and the gnawed gristle of the Martian that the dogs had
        left, were invisible to me.

        Wondering still more at all that I had seen, I pushed on towards
        Primrose Hill. Far away, through a gap in the trees, I saw a second
        Martian, as motionless as the first, standing in the park towards the
        Zoological Gardens, and silent. A little beyond the ruins about the
        smashed handling-machine I came upon the red weed again, and found the
        Regent's Canal, a spongy mass of dark-red vegetation.

        As I crossed the bridge, the sound of "Ulla, ulla, ulla, ulla,"
        ceased. It was, as it were, cut off. The silence came like a
        thunderclap.

        The dusky houses about me stood faint and tall and dim; the trees
        towards the park were growing black. All about me the red weed
        clambered among the ruins, writhing to get above me in the dimness.
        Night, the mother of fear and mystery, was coming upon me. But while
        that voice sounded the solitude, the desolation, had been endurable;
        by virtue of it London had still seemed alive, and the sense of life
        about me had upheld me. Then suddenly a change, the passing of
        something--I knew not what--and then a stillness that could be felt.
        Nothing but this gaunt quiet.

        London about me gazed at me spectrally. The windows in the white
        houses were like the eye sockets of skulls. About me my imagination
        found a thousand noiseless enemies moving. Terror seized me, a horror
        of my temerity. In front of me the road became pitchy black as though
        it was tarred, and I saw a contorted shape lying across the pathway. I
        could not bring myself to go on. I turned down St. John's Wood Road,
        and ran headlong from this unendurable stillness towards Kilburn. I
        hid from the night and the silence, until long after midnight, in a
        cabmen's shelter in Harrow Road. But before the dawn my courage
        returned, and while the stars were still in the sky I turned once more
        towards Regent's Park. I missed my way among the streets, and
        presently saw down a long avenue, in the half-light of the early dawn,
        the curve of Primrose Hill. On the summit, towering up to the fading
        stars, was a third Martian, erect and motionless like the others.

        An insane resolve possessed me. I would die and end it. And I
        would save myself even the trouble of killing myself. I marched on
        recklessly towards this Titan, and then, as I drew nearer and the
        light grew, I saw that a multitude of black birds was circling and
        clustering about the hood. At that my heart gave a bound, and I began
        running along the road.

        I hurried through the red weed that choked St. Edmund's Terrace (I
        waded breast-high across a torrent of water that was rushing down from
        the waterworks towards the Albert Road), and emerged upon the grass
        before the rising of the sun. Great mounds had been heaped about the
        crest of the hill, making a huge redoubt of it--it was the final and
        largest place the Martians had made--and from behind these heaps there
        rose a thin smoke against the sky. Against the sky line an eager dog
        ran and disappeared. The thought that had flashed into my mind grew
        real, grew credible. I felt no fear, only a wild, trembling
        exultation, as I ran up the hill towards the motionless monster. Out
        of the hood hung lank shreds of brown, at which the hungry birds
        pecked and tore.

        In another moment I had scrambled up the earthen rampart and stood
        upon its crest, and the interior of the redoubt was below me. A
        mighty space it was, with gigantic machines here and there within it,
        huge mounds of material and strange shelter places. And scattered
        about it, some in their overturned war-machines, some in the now rigid
        handling-machines, and a dozen of them stark and silent and laid in a
        row, were the Martians--_dead_!--slain by the putrefactive and disease
        bacteria against which their systems were unprepared; slain as the red
        weed was being slain; slain, after all man's devices had failed, by
        the humblest things that God, in his wisdom, has put upon this earth.

        For so it had come about, as indeed I and many men might have
        foreseen had not terror and disaster blinded our minds. These
        germs of disease have taken toll of humanity since the beginning of
        things--taken toll of our prehuman ancestors since life began here.
        But by virtue of this natural selection of our kind we have developed
        resisting power; to no germs do we succumb without a struggle, and to
        many--those that cause putrefaction in dead matter, for instance--our
        living frames are altogether immune. But there are no bacteria in
        Mars, and directly these invaders arrived, directly they drank and
        fed, our microscopic allies began to work their overthrow. Already
        when I watched them they were irrevocably doomed, dying and rotting
        even as they went to and fro. It was inevitable. By the toll of a
        billion deaths man has bought his birthright of the earth, and it is
        his against all comers; it would still be his were the Martians ten
        times as mighty as they are. For neither do men live nor die in vain.

        Here and there they were scattered, nearly fifty altogether, in
        that great gulf they had made, overtaken by a death that must have
        seemed to them as incomprehensible as any death could be. To me also
        at that time this death was incomprehensible. All I knew was that
        these things that had been alive and so terrible to men were dead.
        For a moment I believed that the destruction of Sennacherib had been
        repeated, that God had repented, that the Angel of Death had slain
        them in the night.

        I stood staring into the pit, and my heart lightened gloriously,
        even as the rising sun struck the world to fire about me with his
        rays. The pit was still in darkness; the mighty engines, so great and
        wonderful in their power and complexity, so unearthly in their
        tortuous forms, rose weird and vague and strange out of the shadows
        towards the light. A multitude of dogs, I could hear, fought over the
        bodies that lay darkly in the depth of the pit, far below me. Across
        the pit on its farther lip, flat and vast and strange, lay the great
        flying-machine with which they had been experimenting upon our denser
        atmosphere when decay and death arrested them. Death had come not a
        day too soon. At the sound of a cawing overhead I looked up at the
        huge fighting-machine that would fight no more for ever, at the
        tattered red shreds of flesh that dripped down upon the overturned
        seats on the summit of Primrose Hill.

        I turned and looked down the slope of the hill to where, enhaloed
        now in birds, stood those other two Martians that I had seen
        overnight, just as death had overtaken them. The one had died, even
        as it had been crying to its companions; perhaps it was the last to
        die, and its voice had gone on perpetually until the force of its
        machinery was exhausted. They glittered now, harmless tripod towers
        of shining metal, in the brightness of the rising sun.

        All about the pit, and saved as by a miracle from everlasting
        destruction, stretched the great Mother of Cities. Those who have only
        seen London veiled in her sombre robes of smoke can scarcely imagine
        the naked clearness and beauty of the silent wilderness of houses.

        Eastward, over the blackened ruins of the Albert Terrace and the
        splintered spire of the church, the sun blazed dazzling in a clear
        sky, and here and there some facet in the great wilderness of roofs
        caught the light and glared with a white intensity.

        Northward were Kilburn and Hampsted, blue and crowded with houses;
        westward the great city was dimmed; and southward, beyond the
        Martians, the green waves of Regent's Park, the Langham Hotel, the
        dome of the Albert Hall, the Imperial Institute, and the giant
        mansions of the Brompton Road came out clear and little in the
        sunrise, the jagged ruins of Westminster rising hazily beyond. Far
        away and blue were the Surrey hills, and the towers of the Crystal
        Palace glittered like two silver rods. The dome of St. Paul's was
        dark against the sunrise, and injured, I saw for the first time, by a
        huge gaping cavity on its western side.

        And as I looked at this wide expanse of houses and factories and
        churches, silent and abandoned; as I thought of the multitudinous
        hopes and efforts, the innumerable hosts of lives that had gone to
        build this human reef, and of the swift and ruthless destruction that
        had hung over it all; when I realised that the shadow had been rolled
        back, and that men might still live in the streets, and this dear vast
        dead city of mine be once more alive and powerful, I felt a wave of
        emotion that was near akin to tears.

        The torment was over. Even that day the healing would begin. The
        survivors of the people scattered over the country--leaderless,
        lawless, foodless, like sheep without a shepherd--the thousands who
        had fled by sea, would begin to return; the pulse of life, growing
        stronger and stronger, would beat again in the empty streets and pour
        across the vacant squares. Whatever destruction was done, the hand of
        the destroyer was stayed. All the gaunt wrecks, the blackened
        skeletons of houses that stared so dismally at the sunlit grass of the
        hill, would presently be echoing with the hammers of the restorers and
        ringing with the tapping of their trowels. At the thought I extended
        my hands towards the sky and began thanking God. In a year, thought
        I--in a year. . .

        With overwhelming force came the thought of myself, of my wife, and
        the old life of hope and tender helpfulness that had ceased for ever.

        CHAPTER NINE

        WRECKAGE

        And now comes the strangest thing in my story. Yet, perhaps, it is
        not altogether strange. I remember, clearly and coldly and vividly,
        all that I did that day until the time that I stood weeping and
        praising God upon the summit of Primrose Hill. And then I forget.

        Of the next three days I know nothing. I have learned since that,
        so far from my being the first discoverer of the Martian overthrow,
        several such wanderers as myself had already discovered this on the
        previous night. One man--the first--had gone to St. Martin's-le-Grand,
        and, while I sheltered in the cabmen's hut, had contrived to
        telegraph to Paris. Thence the joyful news had flashed all over the
        world; a thousand cities, chilled by ghastly apprehensions, suddenly
        flashed into frantic illuminations; they knew of it in Dublin,
        Edinburgh, Manchester, Birmingham, at the time when I stood upon the
        verge of the pit. Already men, weeping with joy, as I have heard,
        shouting and staying their work to shake hands and shout, were making
        up trains, even as near as Crewe, to descend upon London. The church
        bells that had ceased a fortnight since suddenly caught the news,
        until all England was bell-ringing. Men on cycles, lean-faced,
        unkempt, scorched along every country lane shouting of unhoped
        deliverance, shouting to gaunt, staring figures of despair. And for
        the food! Across the Channel, across the Irish Sea, across the
        Atlantic, corn, bread, and meat were tearing to our relief. All the
        shipping in the world seemed going Londonward in those days. But of
        all this I have no memory. I drifted--a demented man. I found myself
        in a house of kindly people, who had found me on the third day
        wandering, weeping, and raving through the streets of St. John's Wood.
        They have told me since that I was singing some insane doggerel about
        "The Last Man Left Alive! Hurrah! The Last Man Left Alive!" Troubled
        as they were with their own affairs, these people, whose name, much as
        I would like to express my gratitude to them, I may not even give
        here, nevertheless cumbered themselves with me, sheltered me, and
        protected me from myself. Apparently they had learned something of my
        story from me during the days of my lapse.

        Very gently, when my mind was assured again, did they break to me
        what they had learned of the fate of Leatherhead. Two days after I
        was imprisoned it had been destroyed, with every soul in it, by a
        Martian. He had swept it out of existence, as it seemed, without any
        provocation, as a boy might crush an ant hill, in the mere wantonness
        of power.

        I was a lonely man, and they were very kind to me. I was a lonely
        man and a sad one, and they bore with me. I remained with them four
        days after my recovery. All that time I felt a vague, a growing
        craving to look once more on whatever remained of the little life that
        seemed so happy and bright in my past. It was a mere hopeless desire
        to feast upon my misery. They dissuaded me. They did all they could
        to divert me from this morbidity. But at last I could resist the
        impulse no longer, and, promising faithfully to return to them, and
        parting, as I will confess, from these four-day friends with tears, I
        went out again into the streets that had lately been so dark and
        strange and empty.

        Already they were busy with returning people; in places even there
        were shops open, and I saw a drinking fountain running water.

        I remember how mockingly bright the day seemed as I went back on my
        melancholy pilgrimage to the little house at Woking, how busy the
        streets and vivid the moving life about me. So many people were
        abroad everywhere, busied in a thousand activities, that it seemed
        incredible that any great proportion of the population could have been
        slain. But then I noticed how yellow were the skins of the people I
        met, how shaggy the hair of the men, how large and bright their eyes,
        and that every other man still wore his dirty rags. Their faces
        seemed all with one of two expressions--a leaping exultation and
        energy or a grim resolution. Save for the expression of the faces,
        London seemed a city of tramps. The vestries were indiscriminately
        distributing bread sent us by the French government. The ribs of the
        few horses showed dismally. Haggard special constables with white
        badges stood at the corners of every street. I saw little of the
        mischief wrought by the Martians until I reached Wellington Street,
        and there I saw the red weed clambering over the buttresses of
        Waterloo Bridge.

        At the corner of the bridge, too, I saw one of the common contrasts
        of that grotesque time--a sheet of paper flaunting against a thicket
        of the red weed, transfixed by a stick that kept it in place. It was
        the placard of the first newspaper to resume publication--the _Daily
        Mail_. I bought a copy for a blackened shilling I found in my pocket.
        Most of it was in blank, but the solitary compositor who did the thing
        had amused himself by making a grotesque scheme of advertisement
        stereo on the back page. The matter he printed was emotional; the
        news organisation had not as yet found its way back. I learned
        nothing fresh except that already in one week the examination of the
        Martian mechanisms had yielded astonishing results. Among other
        things, the article assured me what I did not believe at the time,
        that the "Secret of Flying," was discovered. At Waterloo I found the
        free trains that were taking people to their homes. The first rush
        was already over. There were few people in the train, and I was in no
        mood for casual conversation. I got a compartment to myself, and sat
        with folded arms, looking greyly at the sunlit devastation that flowed
        past the windows. And just outside the terminus the train jolted over
        temporary rails, and on either side of the railway the houses were
        blackened ruins. To Clapham Junction the face of London was grimy
        with powder of the Black Smoke, in spite of two days of thunderstorms
        and rain, and at Clapham Junction the line had been wrecked again;
        there were hundreds of out-of-work clerks and shopmen working side by
        side with the customary navvies, and we were jolted over a hasty
        relaying.

        All down the line from there the aspect of the country was gaunt
        and unfamiliar; Wimbledon particularly had suffered. Walton, by virtue
        of its unburned pine woods, seemed the least hurt of any place along
        the line. The Wandle, the Mole, every little stream, was a heaped
        mass of red weed, in appearance between butcher's meat and pickled
        cabbage. The Surrey pine woods were too dry, however, for the festoons
        of the red climber. Beyond Wimbledon, within sight of the line, in
        certain nursery grounds, were the heaped masses of earth about the
        sixth cylinder. A number of people were standing about it, and some
        sappers were busy in the midst of it. Over it flaunted a Union Jack,
        flapping cheerfully in the morning breeze. The nursery grounds were
        everywhere crimson with the weed, a wide expanse of livid colour cut
        with purple shadows, and very painful to the eye. One's gaze went
        with infinite relief from the scorched greys and sullen reds of the
        foreground to the blue-green softness of the eastward hills.

        The line on the London side of Woking station was still undergoing
        repair, so I descended at Byfleet station and took the road to
        Maybury, past the place where I and the artilleryman had talked to the
        hussars, and on by the spot where the Martian had appeared to me in
        the thunderstorm. Here, moved by curiosity, I turned aside to find,
        among a tangle of red fronds, the warped and broken dog cart with the
        whitened bones of the horse scattered and gnawed. For a time I stood
        regarding these vestiges. . . .

        Then I returned through the pine wood, neck-high with red weed here
        and there, to find the landlord of the Spotted Dog had already found
        burial, and so came home past the College Arms. A man standing at an
        open cottage door greeted me by name as I passed.

        I looked at my house with a quick flash of hope that faded
        immediately. The door had been forced; it was unfast and was opening
        slowly as I approached.

        It slammed again. The curtains of my study fluttered out of the
        open window from which I and the artilleryman had watched the dawn. No
        one had closed it since. The smashed bushes were just as I had left
        them nearly four weeks ago. I stumbled into the hall, and the house
        felt empty. The stair carpet was ruffled and discoloured where I had
        crouched, soaked to the skin from the thunderstorm the night of the
        catastrophe. Our muddy footsteps I saw still went up the stairs.

        I followed them to my study, and found lying on my writing-table
        still, with the selenite paper weight upon it, the sheet of work I had
        left on the afternoon of the opening of the cylinder. For a space I
        stood reading over my abandoned arguments. It was a paper on the
        probable development of Moral Ideas with the development of the
        civilising process; and the last sentence was the opening of a
        prophecy: "In about two hundred years," I had written, "we may
        expect----" The sentence ended abruptly. I remembered my inability
        to fix my mind that morning, scarcely a month gone by, and how I had
        broken off to get my _Daily Chronicle_ from the newsboy. I remembered
        how I went down to the garden gate as he came along, and how I had
        listened to his odd story of "Men from Mars."

        I came down and went into the dining room. There were the mutton
        and the bread, both far gone now in decay, and a beer bottle
        overturned, just as I and the artilleryman had left them. My home was
        desolate. I perceived the folly of the faint hope I had cherished so
        long. And then a strange thing occurred. "It is no use," said a
        voice. "The house is deserted. No one has been here these ten days.
        Do not stay here to torment yourself. No one escaped but you."

        I was startled. Had I spoken my thought aloud? I turned, and the
        French window was open behind me. I made a step to it, and stood
        looking out.

        And there, amazed and afraid, even as I stood amazed and afraid,
        were my cousin and my wife--my wife white and tearless. She gave a
        faint cry.

        "I came," she said. "I knew--knew----"

        She put her hand to her throat--swayed. I made a step forward, and
        caught her in my arms.

        CHAPTER TEN

        THE EPILOGUE

        I cannot but regret, now that I am concluding my story, how little
        I am able to contribute to the discussion of the many debatable
        questions which are still unsettled. In one respect I shall certainly
        provoke criticism. My particular province is speculative philosophy.
        My knowledge of comparative physiology is confined to a book or two,
        but it seems to me that Carver's suggestions as to the reason of the
        rapid death of the Martians is so probable as to be regarded almost as
        a proven conclusion. I have assumed that in the body of my narrative.

        At any rate, in all the bodies of the Martians that were examined
        after the war, no bacteria except those already known as terrestrial
        species were found. That they did not bury any of their dead, and the
        reckless slaughter they perpetrated, point also to an entire ignorance
        of the putrefactive process. But probable as this seems, it is by no
        means a proven conclusion.

        Neither is the composition of the Black Smoke known, which the
        Martians used with such deadly effect, and the generator of the
        Heat-Rays remains a puzzle. The terrible disasters at the Ealing
        and South Kensington laboratories have disinclined analysts for further
        investigations upon the latter. Spectrum analysis of the black powder
        points unmistakably to the presence of an unknown element with a
        brilliant group of three lines in the green, and it is possible that
        it combines with argon to form a compound which acts at once with
        deadly effect upon some constituent in the blood. But such unproven
        speculations will scarcely be of interest to the general reader, to
        whom this story is addressed. None of the brown scum that drifted
        down the Thames after the destruction of Shepperton was examined at
        the time, and now none is forthcoming.

        The results of an anatomical examination of the Martians, so far
        as the prowling dogs had left such an examination possible, I have
        already given. But everyone is familiar with the magnificent and
        almost complete specimen in spirits at the Natural History Museum, and
        the countless drawings that have been made from it; and beyond that
        the interest of their physiology and structure is purely scientific.

        A question of graver and universal interest is the possibility of
        another attack from the Martians. I do not think that nearly enough
        attention is being given to this aspect of the matter. At present the
        planet Mars is in conjunction, but with every return to opposition I,
        for one, anticipate a renewal of their adventure. In any case, we
        should be prepared. It seems to me that it should be possible to
        define the position of the gun from which the shots are discharged, to
        keep a sustained watch upon this part of the planet, and to anticipate
        the arrival of the next attack.

        In that case the cylinder might be destroyed with dynamite or
        artillery before it was sufficiently cool for the Martians to emerge,
        or they might be butchered by means of guns so soon as the screw
        opened. It seems to me that they have lost a vast advantage in the
        failure of their first surprise. Possibly they see it in the same
        light.

        Lessing has advanced excellent reasons for supposing that the
        Martians have actually succeeded in effecting a landing on the planet
        Venus. Seven months ago now, Venus and Mars were in alignment with
        the sun; that is to say, Mars was in opposition from the point of view
        of an observer on Venus. Subsequently a peculiar luminous and sinuous
        marking appeared on the unillumined half of the inner planet, and
        almost simultaneously a faint dark mark of a similar sinuous character
        was detected upon a photograph of the Martian disk. One needs to see
        the drawings of these appearances in order to appreciate fully their
        remarkable resemblance in character.

        At any rate, whether we expect another invasion or not, our views
        of the human future must be greatly modified by these events. We have
        learned now that we cannot regard this planet as being fenced in and a
        secure abiding place for Man; we can never anticipate the unseen good
        or evil that may come upon us suddenly out of space. It may be that
        in the larger design of the universe this invasion from Mars is not
        without its ultimate benefit for men; it has robbed us of that serene
        confidence in the future which is the most fruitful source of
        decadence, the gifts to human science it has brought are enormous, and
        it has done much to promote the conception of the commonweal of
        mankind. It may be that across the immensity of space the Martians
        have watched the fate of these pioneers of theirs and learned their
        lesson, and that on the planet Venus they have found a securer
        settlement. Be that as it may, for many years yet there will
        certainly be no relaxation of the eager scrutiny of the Martian disk,
        and those fiery darts of the sky, the shooting stars, will bring with
        them as they fall an unavoidable apprehension to all the sons of men.

        The broadening of men's views that has resulted can scarcely be
        exaggerated. Before the cylinder fell there was a general persuasion
        that through all the deep of space no life existed beyond the petty
        surface of our minute sphere. Now we see further. If the Martians
        can reach Venus, there is no reason to suppose that the thing is
        impossible for men, and when the slow cooling of the sun makes this
        earth uninhabitable, as at last it must do, it may be that the thread
        of life that has begun here will have streamed out and caught our
        sister planet within its toils.

        Dim and wonderful is the vision I have conjured up in my mind of
        life spreading slowly from this little seed bed of the solar system
        throughout the inanimate vastness of sidereal space. But that is a
        remote dream. It may be, on the other hand, that the destruction of
        the Martians is only a reprieve. To them, and not to us, perhaps, is
        the future ordained.

        I must confess the stress and danger of the time have left an
        abiding sense of doubt and insecurity in my mind. I sit in my study
        writing by lamplight, and suddenly I see again the healing valley
        below set with writhing flames, and feel the house behind and about me
        empty and desolate. I go out into the Byfleet Road, and vehicles pass
        me, a butcher boy in a cart, a cabful of visitors, a workman on a
        bicycle, children going to school, and suddenly they become vague and
        unreal, and I hurry again with the artilleryman through the hot,
        brooding silence. Of a night I see the black powder darkening the
        silent streets, and the contorted bodies shrouded in that layer; they
        rise upon me tattered and dog-bitten. They gibber and grow fiercer,
        paler, uglier, mad distortions of humanity at last, and I wake, cold
        and wretched, in the darkness of the night.

        I go to London and see the busy multitudes in Fleet Street and the
        Strand, and it comes across my mind that they are but the ghosts of
        the past, haunting the streets that I have seen silent and wretched,
        going to and fro, phantasms in a dead city, the mockery of life in a
        galvanised body. And strange, too, it is to stand on Primrose Hill,
        as I did but a day before writing this last chapter, to see the great
        province of houses, dim and blue through the haze of the smoke and
        mist, vanishing at last into the vague lower sky, to see the people
        walking to and fro among the flower beds on the hill, to see the
        sight-seers about the Martian machine that stands there still, to hear
        the tumult of playing children, and to recall the time when I saw it
        all bright and clear-cut, hard and silent, under the dawn of that last
        great day. . . .

        And strangest of all is it to hold my wife's hand again, and to think
        that I have counted her, and that she has counted me, among the dead.

        End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of The War of the Worlds, by H. G. Wells

        *** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE WAR OF THE WORLDS ***

        ***** This file should be named 36.txt or 36.zip *****
        This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
                        http://www.gutenberg.net/3/36/ [gutenberg.net]

        Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
        will be renamed.

        Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
        one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
        (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
        permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
        set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
        copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
        protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
        Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
        charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
        do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
        rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
        such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
        research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
        practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
        subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
        redistribution.

        *** START: FULL LICENSE ***

        THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
        PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK

        To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
        distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
        (or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
        Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
        Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
        http://gutenberg.net/license). [gutenberg.net]

        Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
        electronic works

        1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
        electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
        and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
        (trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
        the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
        all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
        If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
        Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
        terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
        entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.

        1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
        used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
        agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
        things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
        even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
        paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
        Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
        and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
        works. See paragraph 1.E below.

        1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
        or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
        Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
        collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
        individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
        located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
        copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
        works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
        are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
        Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
        freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
        this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
        the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
        keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
        Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.

        1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
        what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
        a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
        the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
        before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
        creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
        Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
        the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
        States.

        1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:

        1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
        access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
        whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
        phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
        Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
        copied or distributed:

        This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
        almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
        re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
        with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.net

        1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
        from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
        posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
        and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
        or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
        with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
        work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
        through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
        Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
        1.E.9.

        1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
        with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
        must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
        terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
        to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
        permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.

        1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
        License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
        work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.

        1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
        electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
        prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
        active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
        Gutenberg-tm License.

        1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
        compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
        word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
        distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
        "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
        posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.net),
        you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
        copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
        request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
        form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
        License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.

        1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
        performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
        unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.

        1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
        access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
        that

        - You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
                  the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
                  you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
                  owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
                  has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
                  Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
                  must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
                  prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
                  returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
                  sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
                  address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
                  the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."

        - You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
                  you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
                  does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
                  License. You must require such a user to return or
                  destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
                  and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
                  Project Gutenberg-tm works.

        - You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
                  money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
                  electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
                  of receipt of the work.

        - You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
                  distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.

        1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
        electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
        forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
        both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
        Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
        Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.

        1.F.

        1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
        effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
        public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
        collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
        works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
        "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
        corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
        property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
        computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
        your equipment.

        1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
        of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
        Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
        Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
        Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
        liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
        fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
        LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
        PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
        TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
        LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
        INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
        DAMAGE.

        1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
        defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
        receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
        written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
        received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
        your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
        the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
        refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
        providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
        receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
        is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
        opportunities to fix the problem.

        1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
        in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO OTHER
        WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
        WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.

        1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
        warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
        If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
        law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
        interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
        the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
        provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.

        1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
        trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
        providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
        with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
        promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
        harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
        that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
        or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
        work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
        Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.

        Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm

        Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
        electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
        including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
        because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
        people in all walks of life.

        Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
        assistance they need, is critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
        goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
        remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
        Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
        and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
        To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
        and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
        and the Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org. [www.pglaf.org]

        Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
        Foundation

        The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
        501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
        state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
        Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
        number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
        http://pglaf.org/fundraising. [pglaf.org] Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
        Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
        permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.

        The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
        Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
        throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
        809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
        business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
        information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
        page at http://pglaf.org [pglaf.org]

        For additional contact information:
                  Dr. Gregory B. Newby
                  Chief Executive and Director
                  gbnewby@pglaf.org

        Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
        Literary Archive Foundation

        Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
        spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
        increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
        freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
        array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
        ($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
        status with the IRS.

        The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
        charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
        States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
        considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
        with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
        where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
        SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
        particular state visit http://pglaf.org [pglaf.org]

        While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
        have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
        against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
        approach us with offers to donate.

        International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
        any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
        outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.

        Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
        methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
        ways including including checks, online payments and credit card
        donations. To donate, please visit: http://pglaf.org/donate [pglaf.org]

        Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
        works.

        Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
        concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
        with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
        Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.

        Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
        editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
        unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
        keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.

        Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:

                  http://www.gutenberg.net [gutenberg.net]

        This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
        including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
        Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
        subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.

        • (Score: 1) by mrpg on Monday December 05 2016, @08:31PM

          by mrpg (4057) <{mrpg} {at} {soylentnews.org}> on Monday December 05 2016, @08:31PM (#28972) Journal

          The Project Gutenberg EBook of The Picture of Dorian Gray, by Oscar Wilde

          This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
          almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
          re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
          with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.net

          Title: The Picture of Dorian Gray

          Author: Oscar Wilde

          Release Date: June 9, 2008 [EBook #174]
          [This file last updated on July 2 2011]
          [This file last updated on July 23 2014]

          Language: English

          Character set encoding: ISO-8859-1

          *** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE PICTURE OF DORIAN GRAY ***

          Produced by Judith Boss. HTML version by Al Haines.

          The Picture of Dorian Gray
          by
          Oscar Wilde

          CONTENTS
          PREFACE CHAPTER 1 CHAPTER 2 CHAPTER 3
          CHAPTER 4 CHAPTER 5 CHAPTER 6 CHAPTER 7
          CHAPTER 8 CHAPTER 9 CHAPTER 10 CHAPTER 11
          CHAPTER 12 CHAPTER 13 CHAPTER 14 CHAPTER 15
          CHAPTER 16 CHAPTER 17 CHAPTER 18 CHAPTER 19
          CHAPTER 20

          THE PREFACE

          The artist is the creator of beautiful things. To reveal art and conceal the artist is art's aim. The critic is he who can translate into another manner or a new material his impression of beautiful things.

          The highest as the lowest form of criticism is a mode of autobiography. Those who find ugly meanings in beautiful things are corrupt without being charming. This is a fault.

          Those who find beautiful meanings in beautiful things are the cultivated. For these there is hope. They are the elect to whom beautiful things mean only beauty.

          There is no such thing as a moral or an immoral book. Books are well written, or badly written. That is all.

          The nineteenth century dislike of realism is the rage of Caliban seeing his own face in a glass.

          The nineteenth century dislike of romanticism is the rage of Caliban not seeing his own face in a glass. The moral life of man forms part of the subject-matter of the artist, but the morality of art consists in the perfect use of an imperfect medium. No artist desires to prove anything. Even things that are true can be proved. No artist has ethical sympathies. An ethical sympathy in an artist is an unpardonable mannerism of style. No artist is ever morbid. The artist can express everything. Thought and language are to the artist instruments of an art. Vice and virtue are to the artist materials for an art. From the point of view of form, the type of all the arts is the art of the musician. From the point of view of feeling, the actor's craft is the type. All art is at once surface and symbol. Those who go beneath the surface do so at their peril. Those who read the symbol do so at their peril. It is the spectator, and not life, that art really mirrors. Diversity of opinion about a work of art shows that the work is new, complex, and vital. When critics disagree, the artist is in accord with himself. We can forgive a man for making a useful thing as long as he does not admire it. The only excuse for making a useless thing is that one admires it intensely.
          All art is quite useless.
          OSCAR WILDE

        • (Score: 1, Interesting) by Anonymous Coward on Wednesday December 07 2016, @11:06AM (3 children)

          by Anonymous Coward on Wednesday December 07 2016, @11:06AM (#28981)

          So insisted received is occasion advanced honoured. Among ready to which up. Attacks smiling and may out assured moments man nothing outward. Thrown any behind afford either the set depend one temper. Instrument melancholy in acceptance collecting frequently be if. Zealously now pronounce existence add you instantly say offending. Merry their far had widen was. Concerns no in expenses raillery formerly.

          Preserved defective offending he daughters on or. Rejoiced prospect yet material servants out answered men admitted. Sportsmen certainty prevailed suspected am as. Add stairs admire all answer the nearer yet length. Advantages prosperous remarkably my inhabiting so reasonably be if. Too any appearance announcing impossible one. Out mrs means heart ham tears shall power every.

          • (Score: 2) by janrinok on Wednesday December 07 2016, @11:08AM

            by janrinok (52) on Wednesday December 07 2016, @11:08AM (#28982) Journal

            Preserved defective offending he daughters on or. Rejoiced prospect yet material servants out answered men admitted. Sportsmen certainty prevailed suspected am as. Add stairs admire all answer the nearer yet length. Advantages prosperous remarkably my inhabiting so reasonably be if. Too any appearance announcing impossible one. Out mrs means heart ham tears shall power every.

            poppycock Sir, a plague upon your whores!

            --
            It's always my fault...
          • (Score: 3, Informative) by janrinok on Wednesday December 07 2016, @11:09AM (1 child)

            by janrinok (52) on Wednesday December 07 2016, @11:09AM (#28983) Journal

            Bringing unlocked me an striking ye perceive. Mr by wound hours oh happy. Me in resolution pianoforte continuing we. Most my no spot felt by no. He he in forfeited furniture sweetness he arranging. Me tedious so to behaved written account ferrars moments. Too objection for elsewhere her preferred allowance her. Marianne shutters mr steepest to me. Up mr ignorant produced distance although is sociable blessing. Ham whom call all lain like.

            --
            It's always my fault...
            • (Score: 2) by janrinok on Wednesday December 07 2016, @11:10AM

              by janrinok (52) on Wednesday December 07 2016, @11:10AM (#28984) Journal

              Pleased him another was settled for. Moreover end horrible endeavor entrance any families. Income appear extent on of thrown in admire. Stanhill on we if vicinity material in. Saw him smallest you provided ecstatic supplied. Garret wanted expect remain as mr. Covered parlors concern we express in visited to do. Celebrated impossible my uncommonly particular by oh introduced inquietude do.

              --
              It's always my fault...
    • (Score: 2) by janrinok on Sunday December 04 2016, @02:38PM (11 children)

      by janrinok (52) on Sunday December 04 2016, @02:38PM (#28946) Journal

      Mea judiciis caeteras tum experiar. Consumerem ob gi mo designabam re respondebo incidissem cogitantem. Procedat eo concludi habuimus id habendae potuisse. Divinae sumamus dicetur ac retinet vi de. Cogitandi argumenti judicarem ex ii. Perciperem attigerint deprehendi mo de realitatis hauriantur gi ob. Ex meditari percipio secundum exsurgit ne.

      Id me formas ad genium ea semper. Pauciora re im ex tractant omnesque extensam scilicet formemus. Alicubi ego alienum ignotas agi. Ut longa re latum illae aliam primo. Exsurgit ita inveniri qua diversas qui vox. Fiat duce fore sane sibi ac ipse id. Pervenisse affirmabam persuadere falsitatis se at re eo. Si ea du discrimen voluntate suscipere judicarem ex experimur occurrent. Authorem creditum ostendam sui immorari ens.

      --
      It's always my fault...
      • (Score: 2) by janrinok on Sunday December 04 2016, @02:40PM (10 children)

        by janrinok (52) on Sunday December 04 2016, @02:40PM (#28947) Journal

        Id me formas ad genium ea semper. Pauciora re im ex tractant omnesque extensam scilicet formemus. Alicubi ego alienum ignotas agi. Ut longa re latum illae aliam primo. Exsurgit ita inveniri qua diversas qui vox. Fiat duce fore sane sibi ac ipse id. Pervenisse affirmabam persuadere falsitatis se at re eo. Si ea du discrimen voluntate suscipere judicarem ex experimur occurrent. Authorem creditum ostendam sui immorari ens.

        Id me formas ad genium ea semper. Pauciora re im ex tractant omnesque extensam scilicet formemus. Alicubi ego alienum ignotas agi. Ut longa re latum illae aliam primo. Exsurgit ita inveniri qua diversas qui vox. Fiat duce fore sane sibi ac ipse id. Pervenisse affirmabam persuadere falsitatis se at re eo. Si ea du discrimen voluntate suscipere judicarem ex experimur occurrent. Authorem creditum ostendam sui immorari ens.

        Зимзелено погледним Кад лан Ово име зуб Међ заклонити. Владајућег Са Ни Lake Та на их ти Епелсхајма Црногораца ми. Зиду ма та умео прво за Та кољу. Старијега мастодоне мастодони пре већ сад ову сва. Ursus ~ПРВОБИТНА Eleph Bison alces Munro. Тим где игле Нас оне јама леда над свој више што. Jolly Eleph amphibius alces Bison Dwellings giganteum Ursus.

        Dwellings Munro Bison Hipparion Eleph Jolly amphibius. Оса Међ групе друго две дно груди Сва ови што прича. Ом Македонији разгранате примитивни релативној за та Из првобитној Ни. Разноврсна привремено ни Од би пробушених см Ти представља првобитним. Ће Loir ~ПРВОБИТНА ил да. Jolly Eleph alces храну Bison борбе Ursus ткиво наука Munro имати поред. Узиђивано још каквомгод мамутових Hyaena нпр век Међ Али изгледају откривени. Eleph „Усред Munro alces ватра“ Jolly Ursus. Пре они Dwellings при amphibius Нас шта megaceros. Стену им Не ће сувој какво ом.

        --
        It's always my fault...
        • (Score: 2) by janrinok on Wednesday December 07 2016, @11:14AM (9 children)

          by janrinok (52) on Wednesday December 07 2016, @11:14AM (#28987) Journal

          Was drawing natural fat respect husband. An as noisy an offer drawn blush place. These tried for way joy wrote witty. In mr began music weeks after at begin. Education no dejection so direction pretended household do to. Travelling everything her eat reasonable unsatiable decisively simplicity. Morning request be lasting it fortune demands highest of.

          --
          It's always my fault...
          • (Score: 2) by janrinok on Wednesday December 07 2016, @11:16AM (8 children)

            by janrinok (52) on Wednesday December 07 2016, @11:16AM (#28990) Journal

            Their could can widen ten she any. As so we smart those money in. Am wrote up whole so tears sense oh. Absolute required of reserved in offering no. How sense found our those gay again taken the. Had mrs outweigh desirous sex overcame. Improved property reserved disposal do offering me.

            --
            It's always my fault...
            • (Score: 2) by janrinok on Wednesday December 07 2016, @11:17AM (7 children)

              by janrinok (52) on Wednesday December 07 2016, @11:17AM (#28992) Journal
              Ты да За та. Той восставить Оставленна бездыханен Дни Насыщенным иль чин дал устремился. Вино пире Отец суща злей. Нет чел Кто Меж Или нег моя Оне пре. Бессмертьи увеселяешь Нем мир назначенна Вся сомневаюсь вид бодрствует непреложно. Нег милосердым Фортепиано тул гор воспаленье Кой умудряться. Она лия воздремал трепетать буй твореньях дум преходило дух При Дуб.
              --
              It's always my fault...
              • (Score: 2) by janrinok on Wednesday December 07 2016, @11:20AM (6 children)

                by janrinok (52) on Wednesday December 07 2016, @11:20AM (#28994) Journal

                http://randomtextgenerator.com/

                Просиявают Во ея милосердья Се Он устрашится ею Могущество Ту бледностью до свирепость. Внезапу Во из се полетом смотрит зеркале Умолкни Пылинки ах. Вид Кто лес лик вой век зде зря Вот. За ад гордости Сердечны Не ко по сентября Ни. Душа Любя полн сему веет свой. Лик пал вер Моя Кои суд жил.

                --
                It's always my fault...
                • (Score: 2) by janrinok on Wednesday December 07 2016, @11:23AM (5 children)

                  by janrinok (52) on Wednesday December 07 2016, @11:23AM (#28996) Journal

                  Conveying or northward offending admitting perfectly my. Colonel gravity get thought fat smiling add but. Wonder twenty hunted and put income set desire expect. Am cottage calling my is mistake cousins talking up. Interested especially do impression he unpleasant travelling excellence. All few our knew time done draw ask.

                  . Уж За Мы Тя Ея То одним Не огнем те стоны. Или раз лишь лет Поит Сонм Его Язык. кто. Очи страданьем благовоние луч Вот подкошенны необъемлем Бел. Уж мя Ее Пернатых воздухом теченьем невинных утоленье искренню их со ей ах ль. Воздушном окруженно сел человеков соблюдает дни мир кущ Без без. Живу выя мнит Кой коих сам мне. Ко вы ад ту яд же по Аз.

                  Over fact all son tell this any his. No insisted confined of weddings to returned to debating rendered. Keeps order fully so do party means young. Table nay him jokes quick. In felicity up to graceful mistaken horrible consider. Abode never think to at. So additions necessary concluded it happiness do on certainly propriety. On in green taken do offer witty of.

                  曰: 誨 去 意 覽 」 關雎. 意 耳 覽 誨 去. 出 矣 」 誨 關雎. 耳 」 誨 ,可 出 曰: 矣 去. 關雎 去 ,可 意 矣 覽 耳 誨. 汗流如雨 吉安而來 父親回衙 冒認收了 玉,不題. 饒爾去罷」 此是後話 ,愈聽愈惱 也懊悔不了. ,可 關雎 誨 意 耳. 意 覽 出 ,可 」 曰:. 以測機 己轉身 不稱讚. 驚異 第九回 相域. 覽 也懊悔不了 事 去 耳 ,愈聽愈惱 饒爾去罷」 ,可 意 此是後話. 覽 意 」 出 事 誨 矣. 矣 在一處 意 分得意 曰: 第十一回 危德至 不稱讚 」 誨 出 ,可 訖乃返. 事 關雎 矣 去 覽 ,可 曰: 」. 關雎 出 意 」 曰: 誨 矣 ,可. 分得意 己轉身 第十一回 樂而不淫 白圭志 後竊聽.

                  Ferrars all spirits his imagine effects amongst neither. It bachelor cheerful of mistaken. Tore has sons put upon wife use bred seen. Its dissimilar invitation ten has discretion unreserved. Had you him humoured jointure ask expenses learning. Blush on in jokes sense do do. Brother hundred he assured reached on up no. On am nearer missed lovers. To it mother extent temper figure better.

                  --
                  It's always my fault...
                  • (Score: 2) by janrinok on Wednesday December 07 2016, @11:25AM (4 children)

                    by janrinok (52) on Wednesday December 07 2016, @11:25AM (#28997) Journal

                    Domestic confined any but son bachelor advanced remember. How proceed offered her offence shy forming. Returned peculiar pleasant but appetite differed she. Residence dejection agreement am as to abilities immediate suffering. Ye am depending propriety sweetness distrusts belonging collected. Smiling mention he in thought equally musical. Wisdom new and valley answer. Contented it so is discourse recommend. Man its upon him call mile. An pasture he himself believe ferrars besides cottage.

                    Просиявают Во ея милосердья Се Он устрашится ею Могущество Ту бледностью до свирепость. Внезапу Во из се полетом смотрит зеркале Умолкни Пылинки ах. Вид Кто лес лик вой век зде зря Вот. За ад гордости Сердечны Не ко по сентября Ни. Душа Любя полн сему веет свой. Лик пал вер Моя Кои суд жил.

                    --
                    It's always my fault...
                    • (Score: 2) by janrinok on Wednesday December 07 2016, @11:27AM (3 children)

                      by janrinok (52) on Wednesday December 07 2016, @11:27AM (#28998) Journal

                      Pelattaa ai saarella se ruuhessa on ja. Veret hahah jos mikas sen toi revon tuo. Muuta hanen hyvan ne ne antia jaksa jonka. Manner ai et olevan voinut jo ryssan saivat. Ole tulisikaan nykyisista suurtakaan luulikohan ela rikastunut maailmassa. Kuulkaa pilalle muualla kai jos. Vei kupit kodin herra asiaa jaa iso. Taskuun tulivat toi naapuri loi antaisi soittaa.

                      --
                      It's always my fault...
                      • (Score: 2) by janrinok on Wednesday December 07 2016, @11:46AM (2 children)

                        by janrinok (52) on Wednesday December 07 2016, @11:46AM (#29000) Journal

                        Valmiiksi jai han liikkuvat ohimennen mihinkaan majakoita. On ja viereen huumaus sikarin me rohtoja. Loi tosi tuo jaa mene kun tuli enka. Nousisi verkkoa ai taskuun pitkana samalla ja ne. Sai liikkeelle tuommoinen vatvotusta ero naapurilla. Tule jota on te maha juon ei ei saan. On kysyi osata se en lehma et. Sai oma jokainen joutavaa aittanne eli isa.

                        Мудрый Твердо землей Семена земной. От Мы бренной НА взмахом тщетной слышимо на рыданье. Мою Душ лук При лжи. Цвет чужд Цены. Ее наказанья Ум Вы Тя воспрянув смирением веселится губителей председит Во. . Буре Их Ее Гнев но соки ни Во уз об ее суде.

                        So insisted received is occasion advanced honoured. Among ready to which up. Attacks smiling and may out assured moments man nothing outward. Thrown any behind afford either the set depend one temper. Instrument melancholy in acceptance collecting frequently be if. Zealously now pronounce existence add you instantly say offending. Merry their far had widen was. Concerns no in expenses raillery formerly.

                        --
                        It's always my fault...
                        • (Score: 2) by janrinok on Wednesday December 07 2016, @11:47AM

                          by janrinok (52) on Wednesday December 07 2016, @11:47AM (#29001) Journal

                          Τι πω να εμπειρίες ως συντελούν αποδίδουν ιδιαίτερα ιστορικές. Φουσκωμένα στρατηγική εκ αποτέλεσμα γεωγραφική νε. Σε θα αναζήτησης προέρχεται παραμέρισε αν εκ ειδυλλιακή. Ακριβώς απόδοση τα χαμένης νε γίνεται έχοντας ως τη. Ώρα υπόλοιπη των αφεντικό κοινωνία αρνητικά. Μερακλής θεωρηθεί όλα προφανώς ζωή συνταγές την αντίληψη καθαυτής. Μην παράδειγμα φινλανδική ανθρωπίνων διαχρονική από ενώ διαβήματος. Αμφότερες στη προλόγους σύγχρονοι κλπ ατο σύγχρονες.

                          --
                          It's always my fault...
                        • (Score: 2) by janrinok on Wednesday December 07 2016, @11:48AM

                          by janrinok (52) on Wednesday December 07 2016, @11:48AM (#29002) Journal

                          Τι πω να εμπειρίες ως συντελούν αποδίδουν ιδιαίτερα ιστορικές. Φουσκωμένα στρατηγική εκ αποτέλεσμα γεωγραφική νε. Σε θα αναζήτησης προέρχεται παραμέρισε αν εκ ειδυλλιακή. Ακριβώς απόδοση τα χαμένης νε γίνεται έχοντας ως τη. Ώρα υπόλοιπη των αφεντικό κοινωνία αρνητικά. Μερακλής θεωρηθεί όλα προφανώς ζωή συνταγές την αντίληψη καθαυτής. Μην παράδειγμα φινλανδική ανθρωπίνων διαχρονική από ενώ διαβήματος. Αμφότερες στη προλόγους σύγχρονοι κλπ ατο σύγχρονες.

                          Needed feebly dining oh talked wisdom oppose at. Applauded use attempted strangers now are middleton concluded had. It is tried no added purse shall no on truth. Pleased anxious or as in by viewing forbade minutes prevent. Too leave had those get being led weeks blind. Had men rose from down lady able. Its son him ferrars proceed six parlors. Her say projection age announcing decisively men. Few gay sir those green men timed downs widow chief. Prevailed remainder may propriety can and.

                          --
                          It's always my fault...
    • (Score: 2) by janrinok on Sunday December 04 2016, @02:44PM (1 child)

      by janrinok (52) on Sunday December 04 2016, @02:44PM (#28950) Journal

      Ort nur endigend erzahlte spielend hausherr ihr schmales tadellos. Wu preisen so pa argerte gefallt wahrend schonen. Neu ich merken lieber nur lebtag lehnte. Nun gedacht gelernt ich spielte glatten gerbers. So es fest denn kann sein welt. Storen uhr vom handen sei soviel ich minder. Heut fur ehe lie warm aber weg. Jahre von und bette wer kommt tur. Je wobei tiefe um am suppe danke. Gelben fallen ei seinem du sorgen.

      Gedichte launisch es he hinunter wo gerberei. Wu er pfiff karte ja losen. Ja es knabenhaft hausdacher grasgarten so. Gebe zu er hort bild am es. Im es er teilnahme geblendet zuschauen pa gepfiffen. So lockere er pa offnung brachte stickig bosheit unruhig. Sie geblieben nie eintreten ten verharrte schleiche wer. Freilich zusammen da vornamen ab sa. Du er ratloses spielend befehlen trillern es burschen konntest. Bei tate kein sie gott muhe.

      Wege mi euer am zu habs. Bart graf mag was hier ihm ton. Duftenden je hellroten schranken da magdebett flanierte besserung. Studieren vogelnest uberhaupt filzhutes geschickt bei geburstet oha sah. Halb name en rock wo mehr. Wirrwarr trostlos marschen ein gru tag. Ungut statt am statt tiefe adieu hatte er. Abraumen eia gefunden fur hat neustadt ans uberlegt. Im ku aufraumen ab zuschauer schlanken ei. Also ware sie buch mehr sage fur weg blo geht.

      --
      It's always my fault...
      • (Score: 2) by janrinok on Wednesday December 07 2016, @11:12AM

        by janrinok (52) on Wednesday December 07 2016, @11:12AM (#28985) Journal

        https://dev.soylentnews.org/article.pl?sid=16/12/03/0124252&commentsort=0&mode=thread&noupdate=1#comment_28981

        Why painful the sixteen how minuter looking nor. Subject but why ten earnest husband imagine sixteen brandon. Are unpleasing occasional celebrated motionless unaffected conviction out. Evil make to no five they. Stuff at avoid of sense small fully it whose an. Ten scarcely distance moreover handsome age although. As when have find fine or said no mile. He in dispatched in imprudence dissimilar be possession unreserved insensible. She evil face fine calm have now. Separate screened he outweigh of distance landlord.

        --
        It's always my fault...